Gender Lessons - eThesis - Sibelius

Transcription

Gender Lessons - eThesis - Sibelius
Gender Lessons
Girls and boys negotiating
learning community in Basics of Music
A n nA K uoppAm ä K i
63
STUDIA
MUSICA
S i b e l i u S AcA de m y 2 0 1 5
1
2
Gender Lessons
Girls and boys negotiating learning
community in Basics of Music
3
The Sibelius Academy of the University of the Arts Helsinki
Studia Musica 63
©2015 Anna Kuoppamäki
Cover and lay-out: Hans Andersson
Printhouse: Juvenes Print
ISBN: 978-952-5959-88-8 (PRINT)
ISBN: 978-952-5959-89-5 (PDF)
(ISSN 0788-3757)
4
Anna Kuoppamäki
Studia Musica 63
Gender Lessons
Girls and boys negotiating learning
community in Basics of Music
5
Abstract
Kuoppamäki, Anna. 2015. Gender Lessons. Girls and boys negotiating learning community
in Basics of Music. The Sibelius Academy of the University of the Arts Helsinki.
Studia Musica 63. Doctoral Dissertation. 180 pages.
This study examines the complexity of children’s gendered negotiations in a music
classroom, particularly how the age-related social phenomenon of gendered border work,
gendered learner identities and the construction of musical agency are intertwined in
these negotiations when learning music in a group. This study views 9-year-old children
participating in a classroom discourse of the Finnish Music School Basics of Music (BoM)
course, and aims to identify and analyze practices in which agency is either supported
or restricted. Hence, it discusses both the complications and even the inequalities that
children’s gendered interaction may cause in learning, as well as situations in which social
boundaries are crossed and multi-voicedness promoted. This study adopts a socio-cultural
view of learning, taking a standpoint on gender that is socially constructed, performative
and fluid. Further, it understands discourse extensively, that is, including also the artefacts,
experiences and practices shared by the local community of learners, and seeks to discuss
identity, agency and gender as lived relations that all are negotiated in social interaction
with others. While considering the music classroom as a social space, in which identities
and agencies are negotiated in the classroom discourse, this study argues that gendered
border work interferes with students’ learning processes when they negotiate memberships
in a community of learners, and construct ownership of meaning and agency in musicmaking.
This study is an ethnographic practitioner inquiry that experiments with different
pedagogical solutions, and was therefore carried out in two types of settings: a co-ed
setting and single-gender settings. The same children participated in both settings.
This two-prong approach was important in order to understand how gendered border
work is intertwined with the processes in which identities and agencies are negotiated
collectively as well as individually. The data, collected during one semester (16 weeks)
consists of: videotaped lessons; children’s stimulated recall-interviews conducted in
groups, individually and in pairs; and a teacher’s research diary. The analysis uses multimethodological lenses, including both concept-driven and data-driven qualitative analysis.
Furthermore, in order to attend to the voices of the children participating in BoM, and to
give the reader a taste of the ambiances and feelings and what gendered border work may
be about, a narrative approach was used by presenting characters of “Emma” and “Amos”.
6
These two narratives are representative constructions based on the experiences of several
children who participated in the BoM classroom activities and, later, in the stimulated
recall-interview sessions.
The findings of this study suggest that, in the music classroom, for this particular
age-group, children’s gendered negotiations may create boundary issues, and thus,
obstacles for democratic and meaningful learning to take place. In order to promote
equal opportunities and collaborative learning, social issues, such as gender, need to
be identified and treated openly and sensitively in the classroom discourse. In the BoM
classroom under study, gendered border work took place in three ways: in adopting gender
based learner identities; in holding gendered beliefs and pre-conceptions; and in falling
into polarized “good student” and “rebel student” identities, thus driving the processes of
negotiating memberships and constructing ownership of meaning. The study points out
how, in particular, the use of student voice operates as a legitimator, regulating access
to participation and contributing to shared meaning making. However, the findings
suggest that, in a co-ed setting, the practices that support reflexivity and the processes of
negotiating individual meanings de-emphasize gendered groupings among the children.
In the BoM classroom, these practices involve individual creative activities, such as the
students inventing own rhythmic patterns or compositions, which allowed them to draw
from their own personal worlds. In these situations, the students were able to cross the
gender boundaries and engage in learning collaboratively.
Keywords: Music education; gender; gendered border work; learner identity; agency;
collaborative learning; learning community; music school; music theory; practitioner
inquiry.
7
Tiivistelmä
Kuoppamäki, Anna 2015. Tyttöjen ja poikien opit. Sukupuolineuvottelu oppimisyhteisöstä
Musiikin perusteissa. Taideyliopiston Sibelius-Akatemia. Studia Musica 63. Väitöskirja.
180 sivua.
Tutkimuksessa tarkastellaan, kuinka lasten sukupuoleen sidottu rajatyön käsite
(gendered border work), oppijaidentiteetit ja musiikillinen toimijuus kietoutuvat
toisiinsa musiikin ryhmäoppimisessa. Tutkimuksessa analysoidaan yhdeksänvuotiaiden
lasten osallistumista luokkahuonediskurssiin musiikkiopiston “Musiikin perusteiden”
tunneilla. Tutkimus pohjautuu sosiokulttuuriseen oppimiskäsitykseen. Sukupuoli
(gender) ymmärretään sosiaalisesti rakentuneena, performatiivisena ja prosessimaisena.
Identiteettiä, toimijuutta ja sukupuolta tarkastellaan alati muuttuvina sosiaalisina
suhteina, joista neuvotellaan vuorovaikutuksessa toisten kanssa. Musiikkiluokka
nähdään siis sosiaalisena tilana, jossa identiteeteistä ja toimijuuksista neuvotellaan
luokkahuonediskurssissa. Diskurssi ymmärretään laajassa merkityksessä sisältämään
myös oppijoiden keskenään jakamat artefaktit, kokemukset ja käytännöt. Aineiston kautta
tarkastellaan lasten sukupuolineuvottelusta mahdollisesti aiheutuvia oppimisen vaikeuksia
tai jopa eriarvoisuutta aiheuttavia tekijöitä, mutta myös tilanteita joissa sosiaalisia
raja-aitoja ylitetään ja moniäänisyyttä tuetaan. Tutkimuksen perusteella esitetään, että
lasten sukupuolinen rajatyö vaikuttaa oppilaiden oppimisprosseihin erilaisissa musiikin
tekemisen tilanteissa ryhmäjäsenyyksistä, merkityksistä, omistajuudesta ja toimijuudesta
neuvoteltaessa.
Tutkimus on etnografinen practitioner inquiry, jossa tutkija toimii sekä opettajana että
tutkijana kokeillen erilaisia oppimisyhteisön ideaalia tavoittelevia pedagogisia ratkaisuja.
Tämän vuoksi tutkimus on toteutettu kahdessa vaiheessa: sekaryhmässä sekä tyttöjen ja
poikien erillisissä ryhmissä. Tutkimuksessa samat lapset osallistuvat molempiin vaiheisiin.
Kaksivaiheisuus mahdollistaa erityisesti sen tarkastelemisen, kuinka sukupuolinen rajatyö
kietoutuu prosesseihin, joissa identiteeteistä ja toimijuuksista neuvotellaan sekä yhteisön
että yksilön tasolla. Aineisto on kerätty yhden lukukauden (16 viikkoa) aikana, ja se koostuu
videoiduista oppitunneista, ryhmä-, yksilö- ja parihaastatteluina toteutetuista lasten
stimulated recall -haastatteluista sekä opettajan tutkimuspäiväkirjoista. Analyysissä on
hyödynnetty sekä käsite- että aineistolähtöistä laadullista sisällönanalyysiä ja narratiivisia
menetelmiä. Narratiivista lähestymistapaa on käytetty koostettaessa useamman lapsen
kertomuksista hahmot “Emma” ja “Amos”, jotka ovat representatiivisia konstruktioita
(representative construction) luokkahuoneen aktiviteetteihin ja stimulated recall
-haastatteluihin osallistuneiden lasten kokemuksista. Hahmojen tarkoituksena on nostaa
8
esiin tutkimukseen osallistuneiden lasten ääni ja valottaa lukijalle tutkimuksen kohteena
olleen luokan tunnelmia ja tunteita sekä lasten sukupuolisen rajatyön mahdollisia piirteitä.
Tutkimuksessa osoitetaan, kuinka musiikkiluokassa ja tutkimuksen kohteena olevassa
ikäryhmässä lasten sukupuolineuvotteluissa saattaa rakentua sosiaalisia raja-aitoja,
jotka haittaavat demokraattisen ja mielekkään oppimisen toteutumista. Yhdenvertaisten
mahdollisuuksien ja yhteistyössä tapahtuvan oppimisen tukeminen edellyttää sosiaalisten
tekijöiden, kuten sukupuoleen liittyvien neuvottelujen tunnistamista ja sensitiivistä
käsittelyä luokkahuonediskurssissa. Tutkimuksen kohteena olleessa musiikin perusteiden
opetusryhmässä lasten sukupuolinen rajatyö ilmeni kolmella tavalla ohjaten prosesseja,
joissa ryhmäjäsenyyksistä ja oppimisen merkityksistä neuvoteltiin lasten kesken: (1)
sukupuoleen sidotun oppijaidentiteetin omaksumisena, (2) sukupuoleen sidottujen
käsitysten ja ennakkoluulojen ylläpitämisenä ja (3) polarisoituneiden ns. “kiltin oppijan”
ja “villin oppijan” identiteettien ylläpitämisenä. Erityisesti sukupuolittuneet erot
oppilaiden puheessa vaikuttivat oppilaiden mahdollisuuksiin osallistua ja vaikuttaa
yhteisistä merkityksistä neuvotteluun. Tutkimus osoittaa kuitenkin, että ns. sekaryhmässä
käytännöt, jotka tukivat refleksiivistä oppimista ja yksilöllistä merkityksistä neuvottelua
vähensivät sukupuolittuneita ryhmäjakoja lasten keskuudessa. Tällaisia olivat käytännöt,
jotka sisälsivät myös yksilöllisiä ja omasta elämysmaailmasta ammentavia luovia
prosesseja, kuten oppilaiden omien rytmisten ostinatojen keksimistä tai säveltämistä.
Näissä luokkatilanteissa oppilaat saattoivat ylittää sukupuoleen sidottuja raja-aitoja ja
osallistua oppimiseen yhteistyössä toisten kanssa.
Asiasanat: musiikkikasvatus, sukupuoli, sukupuolen rajatyö, oppijaidentiteetti, toimijuus,
kollaboratiivinen oppiminen, oppimisyhteisö, musiikkiopisto, musiikin perusteet,
practitioner inquiry.
9
Acknowledgements
In many ways, this work is about community. Nurturing of both collaborative learning and
a sense community among my students has been my inspiration and pedagogical guideline
when practicing as a music educator. When engaging in the process of conducting this
inquiry my research interest was particularly in the social issues that may hinder such
an environment from developing. In my own life, I have been fortunate enough to be
surrounded by many communities that I have been privileged to work and reflect my
thoughts with.
The first community that I want to thank is my Mutri doctoral school of Sibelius
Academy – my supervisors, professors and fellow doctoral students. First and foremost
I am grateful for my responsible supervisor Prof. Heidi Westerlund with whom I have
had an enormous joy to share insights about music education, and who has supported me
endlessly in every step of the way when conducting this inquiry. Thank you for your vision
and making this journey so memorable. I would like to thank my second supervisor Prof.
Sidsel Karlsen for teaching me academic rigor and for always offering fresh and relevant
perspectives on my research topic. It has been a great pleasure to study with you. I also
thank Prof. Lauri Väkevä for inspiring conversations and for a good company in shoe
shopping in various parts of the world. My gratitude also goes to Prof. emerita of music
education Marjut Laitinen who was my first supervisor when I first started my doctoral
studies. Further, I would like to thank Prof. Ritva Engeström for supervision in an earlier
stage of my project, and again recently when reading the first version of my work. Your
insightful comments helped me to find a new angle to my topic in this last stage of the
inquiry. I also thank Prof. Kai Lehikoinen for taking time for reading my first full draft
of the work and for giving relevant and helpful comments. I would also like to thank the
reviewers of this study, Prof. Taru Leppänen and Prof. Cecilia Ferm Thorgersen, for their
careful reading and insightful comments on the manuscript.
Through out the research project, the community of the doctoral students of Sibelius
Academy’s Faculty of Music Education, Jazz, and Folk Music has been a great support.
Thank you particularly Inga Rikandi and Hanna Nikkanen, as well as Tuulikki Laes,
Alexis Kallio, Heidi Partti, Aleksi Ojala, Sari Muhonen, Olli-Taavetti Kankkunen,
Danielle Treacy and others for reading and commenting on my work in different stages.
10
I would also like to thank scholars outside Sibelius Academy, Finnish and international,
for their expertise and the privilege of discussing my work with them over the years: Prof.
Margaret Barrett, Prof. Philip Alperson, Prof. Liora Bresler, Prof. Estelle Jorgensen, Prof.
Roberta Lamb, Prof. Sandra Stauffer, Prof. Tuula Gordon, Prof. Elina Lahelma and Prof.
Liisa Tainio.
The next community that I owe my gratitude for, is my own professional context,
The Music School of West Helsinki. I would like to thank all my wonderful colleagues,
and particularly Riitta Poutanen for inspiring pedagogical conversations, a lifting spirit
and an on-going support when trying to cope with the dual role of a full time worker
and a doctoral student. I also thank Sibelius Academy for funding my attendances to the
international conferences over the years and for a grant for printing expenses of this book.
I want to thank Dr. Christina Linsenmeyer for a wonderful help and flexibility in the
process of proof reading the dissertation. The last meters of the run are always the hardest,
and your support was priceless. Hans, thank you for the cover and layout of the book.
My dear parents Sirpa and Jukka, and my sisters and brothers Petri, Inka, Miika, Taika,
Joona and Aarni, thank you for your love and care. Petri, thank you also for your helpful
insights into my work. My beloved friends, Ona, Samuli, Martina, Tuula, Tuomas, Riikka,
Nalle and Aija, thank you for all your support in all times.
Finally, Hans and Wim, my loves, thank you for your endless patience and cheer.
I dedicate this work for you.
Anna Kuoppamäki
January 2015
11
TABLE OF CONTENTS
Introduction ......................................................................................................................................
1616
1 Context of the study and theoretical lenses ..........................................................................
20 20
1.1 Earlier research ......................................................................................................................20
20
1.2 Introducing the context of the study ..............................................................................
27 27
Basic Education in the Arts .................................................................................................
27 27
The teaching of music theory in Finland ...........................................................................
28 28
BoM Rationale ........................................................................................................................
29 29
BoM at the site of this study ................................................................................................
31 31
1.3 Socio-cultural approach in the BoM classroom .........................................................33
33
Communities of practice ......................................................................................................
35 35
Memberships and ownerships of meaning .......................................................................
36 36
1.4 Learning and gender ..........................................................................................................
38 38
The Conception of gender ....................................................................................................
39 39
Performative gender ...............................................................................................................
40 40
Localized femininity and masculinity practices .............................................................4343
Gendered border work ..........................................................................................................
44 44
Gendered agency ....................................................................................................................
45 45
1.5 Social change in the classroom .........................................................................................46
46
2 Methodological approach and research questions ............................................................
48 48
2.1 Research questions ..............................................................................................................
48 48
2.2 Inquiry as stance ..................................................................................................................49
49
Practitioner research ..............................................................................................................
50 50
2.3 Ethnography ..........................................................................................................................
5151
Educational ethnography ......................................................................................................
52 52
Ethnography in BoM classroom ..........................................................................................
52 52
2.4 Research design and data collection ...............................................................................
53 53
Data collection ........................................................................................................................
5454
2.5 Methods of analysis .............................................................................................................
56 56
2.6 Ethical considerations .........................................................................................................
61 61
3 The case of BoM ...........................................................................................................................
63 63
3.1 Getting started ......................................................................................................................
68 68
3.2 When the challenges begin ................................................................................................
69 69
3.3 Looking for ‘coping strategies’ ........................................................................................
73 73
3.4 Promising glimpses ..............................................................................................................
75 75
3.5 Looking back from a teacher’s perspective ..................................................................
79 79
12
4 Interaction in the BoM classroom ...................................................................................... 81
4.1 Modes of participation ................................................................................................... 81
81
4.1.1 The Use of student voice .........................................................................................82 82
Girls and the use of student voice ...........................................................................8787
Boys and the use of student voice ..........................................................................91 91
4.1.2 The Use of mobility, time and physical space .......................................................9999
Girls and the use of mobility, time and physical space ........................................104
104
Boys and the use of mobility, time and physical space ..........................................
107 107
4.2 Holding gendered beliefs and preconceptions ..............................................................
108 108
4.3 Shifting between ‘good student’ and ‘rebel student’ identities ...............................
112112
4.3.1 The double-edged sword of being a ‘good student’ ................................................
113 113
4.3.2 The vulnerable ‘rebels’ ...............................................................................................
115115
4.4 Summary ................................................................................................................................
118118
5 The BoM classroom reaching for social change ..................................................................
120 120
5.1 ‘Emma’ and ‘Amos’: Two constructed narratives ......................................................
120120
5.2 Bridging the multi-voiced social spaces .........................................................................
126126
5.3 Summary ..................................................................................................................................
131 130
6 Conclusions ......................................................................................................................................
132 132
7 Discussion .......................................................................................................................................
136 136
7.1 Revisiting the community of practice ...............................................................................
136 136
The Forming of memberships in the BoM classroom .....................................................
136 136
The Gaining of ownership in the BoM classroom ...........................................................
138 138
Rethinking the Finnish BoM classroom as an exploratory space .................................
139 139
7.2 Revisiting performative gender ..........................................................................................
141 141
The Forming of memberships in the BoM classroom .....................................................
141 141
The Gaining of ownership in the BoM classroom ...........................................................
142 142
Understanding the music classroom as a gender-sensitive space .................................
143143
7.3 Revisiting the inquiry as stance – music educator as a change-agent ....................
146 146
7.4 The Trustworthiness of my inquiry – issues of validity ............................................
148148
7.5 Closing words ..........................................................................................................................
151 151
References ..........................................................................................................................................
153 153
Appendix 1 .........................................................................................................................................
176 176
Appendix 2 ........................................................................................................................................
177177
Appendix 3.........................................................................................................................................
178178
13
14
“We all teach gender, we all perform gender”
(Roberta Lamb 2007, 3)
15
Introduction
If I had to name one thing that I would hope for my students, it would be that they
have opportunities to creatively and meaningfully explore music, both individually and
collectively. This hope was also the initial inspiration for conducting this study. In my own
Finnish Music School Basics of Music classroom, I have been committed to experimenting
with practices that I have thought would promote processes of such musical exploration.
My aim has been to facilitate learning environments that would invite students to take an
active stance as learners, expressing their own opinions, while also being sensitive to the
views of others. In other words, the students construct personal meanings, while gaining
experiences of what it means to be a member of a particular community. In a Finnish
music classroom, this typically means engaging in processes of music-making and shared
meaning negotiations in relatively free dialogical settings that involve versatile musical
interaction. This active stance approach applies to general music education as well as to
specialized extra-curricular music schools; the latter is the context of this study. To be
successful, this kind of musical participation calls for cooperation and social sensitivity
from everyone involved.
However, the social life of a classroom may sometimes be messy, generating boundary
issues and tensions that may compromise student participation and even cause inequalities
among the students. In music education, such social interaction complications may cause
consequences on two levels. First, on a collective level where music is a social experience,
complications may affect the processes of shared meaning-making when people engage in
musical activities with others. Secondly, on an individual level where people gain a sense
of ownership of learning by having legitimacy to contribute, complications may affect the
processes of gaining a sense of agency in negotiating personal meanings. Hence, in order
to promote individual and shared musical agency (e.g. Karlsen 2011), that is, for people to
recognize the range of possibilities to act and interact musically, it is necessary to take into
account the social conditions that may interfere the learning processes (see Westerlund
2002). Further, as a result of my personal experiences as a practitioner observing the social
interaction in my own music classroom, this study presumes that gender is one of the
social dimensions that operates as a vehicle of inclusion and exclusion among the children.
Among their peer groups in school-yards and other social spaces, children step in and
out of stereotypical gendered behaviours, sometimes by emphasizing conventionalized
gendered groupings and sometimes by ignoring them. In the social spaces of learning,
such as the classroom, these manifestations of children’s gendered negotiations, however,
may create obstacles for democratic and meaningful learning to take place.
16
In the Nordic schooling discourse, it is a central goal to offer the same educational
resources for all children regardless their age, class, gender, ethnicity or location. With
minor exceptions, such as sports education, teaching usually takes place in co-educational
settings. Nevertheless, the recent literature (Käyhkö 2011; Lahelma 2012) suggests that in
Finnish schools, gender equality is rather understood as gender neutrality (Käyhkö 2011).
This is evident, for example, in official school documents where references to gender have
gradually decreased. However, some authors claim that this gender neutrality (and equality)
is only apparent (ibid.). The administrative attempts to neutralize gender have not been
able to decrease the significance of gender in everyday school life, where girls and boys
remain juxtaposed with each other (ibid.). Thus, it seems that the normative expectations
of our school system not to underpin stereotypical behaviour, easily results in taking the
equal treatment for granted. Indeed, when conducting this study, I more than once ran
into the question of gender issues ‘being taken care of long ago’. The danger of falling
into such ‘gender-blindness’, that is, considering the questions of gender as something that
has been resolved and, as such, not worth of further studies, is a current issue in music
education (Roulston & Misawa 2011). Namely, understanding gender as something that is
constructed and reconstructed in everyday life, and particularly in interactions with other
people, it has neither been ‘taken care of’, nor should it be taken for granted. As the Danish
childhood researcher Jan Kampmann argues (see Bredesen 2003), every generation of
children re-invents what gender means to them. Therefore, gendered negotiations are also
inherently part of the social life of every music classroom.
Against this background, by viewing my own classroom, this practitioner inquiry or
more specifically ‘inquiry as stance’ examines the complexity of children’s gendered
negotiations, and by asking “How is gender performed in the negotiations of BoM
classroom?”, considers the music classroom as a social space in which identities and
agencies are negotiated in the classroom discourse (e.g. Wenger 1998/2003). I understand
discourse extensively – to also mean the artefacts, experiences and practices that are
shared by a local community of learners (Wenger 1998/2003; Gutierrez et al. 1995).
Accordingly, I adopt a post-structuralist standpoint that gender, as a constitutive source
of identity, is also socially and discursively negotiated (e.g. Butler 1990; Connell 2002).
These negotiations are simultaneously cultural and contextual, as well as individual and
collective. In this performative view (Butler 1990/1999) gender is not something that is
fixed and solid. In other words, it is not something that we are, but rather something
that is fluid and situational – something that we do by reproducing certain actions, such
as gestures, motions and physical marks (see e.g. Stone 2007; Berg 2010). For children,
sustaining and contesting gendered conventions in the form of gendered border work (e.g.
Thorne 1993) is a way to manifest their on-going negotiations of gender. This testing of
the limits and potentials of gender – stepping in and out of gendered conventions – is
17
a natural part of the process of growing up. In the social life of a classroom, however,
these manifestations sometimes complicate interactions and even create forms of student
‘underlife’ (Goffman 1961), either disruptive or restrained behaviours, that may direct the
participation of everyone involved. By experimenting with pedagogical solutions in which
the same children participate in co-ed and single-gender learning environments, this study
seeks to explore and better understand the dynamics of the social phenomenon of gendered
border work in a music classroom context. Hence, this study argues that gendered border
work (e.g. Thorne 1993) interferes with learning processes when negotiating memberships
in a community of learners, and constructing ownership of meaning and agency in music
making (Wenger 1998/2003). Therefore, if the aim of teaching, among other things, is
to foster equal access to learning and transformation, these consequences cannot be
overlooked but need to be treated in the classroom discourse.
This practitioner inquiry views gender from a fresh angle by examining the interrelations
of children’s gendered border work (e.g. Thorne 1993), learner identities (e.g. Wenger
1998/2003) and the construction of musical agency (e.g. Karlsen 2011). By sharing parts
of the social life of one particular music classroom, the study discusses the challenges and
potentialities that arose when negotiating the classroom discursive practices with these
particular children. My own role as a researcher and practitioner is twofold. On one hand,
it could be claimed that I know this context in-and-out after many years of practicing as
a teacher in classrooms similar to the one examined in this study. On the other hand, I
realize that my dual role sets special kinds of challenges for the trustworthiness of this
study. Knowing that it is impossible to entirely separate the two roles, I am trying to
address the social issues in classroom interaction as openly as possible in order to give a
rich picture of the happenings that took place and the phenomenon under study.
In the study, the children participated in reflecting on their own experiences when
engaging in the classroom discursive practices. When conducting this study, giving voice
to the children themselves when trying to understand how gendered border work might
get intertwined with the processes of constructing memberships and contributing to the
shared enterprises in the classroom discourse is held as one of the central starting points.
Hence, this study seeks to discuss identity, agency and gender as lived relations (McNay
2004) that are all constructed in social interaction with others. This aim brings me back
to the beginning.
18
I started this introduction by stating that my hope as a music educator was to be able
to offer my students opportunities for musical explorations in different forms. In other
words, to facilitate social learning environments and musical practices that would promote
curiosity and an open-minded attitude towards music making and learning itself. Building
up such conditions requires mutual respect, shared interests and cooperation from all the
participants, as well as the capability for individual reflection and making of personal
choices. In the social life of children, gender, as a constitutive source of identity, operates
as an indicator when determining who is taken in to the shared activities, and who is
left out. Therefore, the focus of this study concerns children’s social interactions and the
ways gender becomes intertwined with the processes of negotiating learner identities and
agencies, thus, either promoting or complicating their efforts to take an active stance as
learners. This study provides a greater understanding of the social dynamics of children’s
gendered negotiations in classroom-based learning, and means to onwards facilitate
gender sensitivity in the music classroom.
19
1 Context of the study and theoretical lenses
This chapter introduces the context of the study and its theoretical lenses. The aim of
this study is to explore children’s social interaction when learning music in the Finnish
Music School ‘Basics of Music’ (BoM) classroom, and particularly, to observe and
understand how gender becomes intertwined with the processes of negotiating learner
identities and agencies when participating in the classroom discourse. To this end, it
introduces a socio-cultural perspective on learning that emphasizes participation and
cultural settings as central to learning. Furthermore, it discusses gender as socially and
discursively constructed and localized practice, particularly viewing it from angles that
would open new understandings about children’s gendered interactions when entering
educational spaces. This chapter begins by locating this study in the research fields of
gender and music education. Then, it briefly introduces the Finnish Basic Education in the
Arts system, and moves on to the tradition of teaching music theory in Finland. Finally,
it generally rationalizes the course Basics of Music (BoM) and describes the BoM in the
context of this study.
1.1 Earlier research
Since the 1980s, the subject of gender in the school context has widely interested scholars.
These studies have focused, for example, on identifying and treating structures within
schooling that are seen to produce inequity between girls and boys regarding access to
educational resources and learning outcomes (e.g. Bailey 2002; Weaver-Hightower 2003;
see also Roulston & Misawa 2011). A large body of that literature draws from the secondwave feminist accounts, such as sex role socialisation theories (e.g. Davies 1984; Paley
1984; Lees 1986), followed by the third-wave feminism and the post-structuralist gender
theories in late 1980s early 90s (e.g. Davies 1989; Walkerdine 1989, 1990; Butler 1990;
Connell 2002) that discuss gender, above all, as a fluid and social structure.
In next section, I first introduce research conducted in the field of general education that
views gender and equality issues, for example, in relation to school achievement; learner
identities; power hierarchies; sexuality in school context; teacher attitudes; citizenship; or
other identity variables such as class, ethnicity or nationality. I then briefly introduce some
studies conducted in arts education, and move on to research that focuses on gender and
music education. These studies discuss topics such as gender in relation to various aspects
of musical performances; pedagogical issues and research practices; gendering of musical
practices; interaction in music classroom; and music teachers’ perceptions.
20
The debates on gender and achievement and reports suggesting that girls’ and boys’
experiences of schooling differ from one another (Skelton & Francis 2009) have turned
scholars’ interest, for instance, to whether girls and boys actually learn differently (BaronCohen 2004; Slavin 1994), or whether the learning styles of girls and boys differ from one
another (Coffield et al. 2004; Younger et al. 2005). Despite the popularity of such beliefs,
there is little evidence to support a so-called ‘brain-sex’; or that learning styles could be
clearly distinguished one from another; or that learning styles would be gender specific.
The studies on gender-based classroom placement have shown evidence of girls benefiting
from single-gender teaching, whereas boys do not seem to profit from it, though they may
be more motivated to study arts and humanities in this setting (Warrington & Younger
2001; Younger et al. 2005; Younger and Warrington 2006; Jackson 2002; Sullivan 2010;
Ivinson & Murphy 2007; Lembo 2011). However, Younger et al. (2005) found that practices
that improved boys’ learning outcomes in primary literacy implemented holistic teaching
strategies (strategies that integrate reading, writing, speaking, and listening into a whole)
and promoted social interaction and collaboration among the students, for instance, by
using drama and encouraging paired and group talk that allowed the students to share
and explore their ideas before starting to write. Hence, what appeared to be particularly
valuable in these single-gender environments was that they specifically payed attention to
the social conditions of the students. Such focus on the social interaction, holistic teaching
strategies and collaborative learning when facilitating the learning environments – either
co-ed or single-gender – resonates highly with the pre-understanding of this study that
takes a standpoint to gender and learning that they both are primarily social conducts.
Studies on femininities (Renold 2001; Reay, 2001; Paechter 2006; Gordon 2006a,
2000b) and on masculinities (Connell 1995; Skelton 2001; Martino & Pallotta-Chiarolli
2003; Martino & Berrill 2003; Connolly 2004; Martino 2006) in the school environment
have shown polarization between female and male students, for example, in adopting
learner identities; this is, not least due to gendered cultural expectations set to the students
when entering spaces of learning. The processes by which children and adolescents
deconstruct and reproduce gender collectively are illuminated, for example, in studies on
classroom-based literature discussion groups (Brendler 2012), pre-school aged children’s
play groups (DeLair 2000) and all-girls’ after-school clubs (Happel 2011). For instance,
Brendler’s (2012) study group, who considered gender and power relations through the
lens of conversational dynamics, suggested that students’ varied communities of practice,
such as a classroom community of practice, most likely influenced their gender beliefs.
Also these studies further inform us about the significance of gender in children’s and
adolescents’ social lives and about the importance of investing in the social conditions
and equity issues in educational contexts in order to better promote equal opportunities
among the students. Regarding the interrelations of gender and school achievement, the
21
work of Francis (2000), Skelton (2006) and Francis and Skelton (2005, 2009), for example,
explain that other social identities, including ethnicity and social class, have a greater
influence on school achievement than gender alone. Hence, gender as well as other identity
variables should always be viewed as intersectional, and examined by considering the
ways they interact with one another. In fact, studies on high-achieving students (Renold &
Allan 2004; Swain 2002) suggest that there are more similarities than differences between
male and female students. Furthermore, gender has been used as a lens in a large body of
studies that examine students’ classroom interaction and teacher attitudes in perceiving
their students (Renold 2000, 2003, 2005, 2006b; Skelton and Francis 2003; Skelton 1989).
These studies suggest that teachers persist in ‘reading’ the students according to their
gender, that is, the boys are seen to achieve because of their ‘natural talent’, whereas girls’
school successes are considered to be due to their diligent work. However, teacher attitude
is just one factor that influences constructions of identity. Another important element is
how students position themselves when engaging in classroom discursive practices which
is one of the interests of this study.
In a large number of Finnish school ethnography studies, gender has been the focus
(e.g. Gordon et al. 2000; Tolonen 2001; Lahelma & Gordon 2003). Another primary focus
has been the differences and inequalities in schools, contextualized in the construction of
student citizenship (Gordon, Holland & Lahelma 2000a and 2000b; Gordon 2006a, 2006b;
Gordon, Holland, Lahelma & Thomson 2008). In his inquiry, Lehtonen (2003) examines
how students construct sexuality and gender in school by sustaining and contesting the
existing constructions and norms related to sexuality and gender. His findings suggest
that, in formal and informal schools, heteronormativity is prevalent and supported in many
ways, for example, in textbooks, teaching and everyday school practices. In school social
life, students and teachers were found to both promote and contest these heteronormative
accounts. The relations of gender and nationality in children’s interactions are the focus
of Lappalainen’s (2006) research, while Honkasalo (2011) discusses the themes of
multiculturalism and gender equality among girls with multicultural backgrounds. These
studies show how questions of nationality, ethnicity and gender intersect in children’s
social lives, and how meanings of racism are often gendered and nationally-specific.
Tainio (2005, 2007, 2008, 2009) examines the use of verbal communication in classroom
conversations, and discovers that teachers frequently use gendered group designations,
such as ‘boys’; in that way, teachers highlight male and female students as uniform
groups. This uniformity is particularly evident when teachers have issues with student
discipline. In her study, Palmu (2003) looks at how gender identities are constructed
through cultural texts used in schools, and reinforced by students in the context of Finnish
language lessons. Palmu’s findings suggest that the cultural texts used in schools, such
as textbooks, literature readings and classroom discourses, reinforce images of gender,
22
in which emphasize manly agency and masculine linguistic expressions, leaving women
and femininity in the background. Gendered group hierarchies in school-sports education
are the focus of Berg’s (2010) inquiry, which points out how, in the context of schoolsports lessons, access to expert positions are dependent on students’ socio-economical
backgrounds; these backgrounds regulate access to material and social resources, and
are therefore unevenly distributed. Thus, she demonstrates how mechanisms of inclusion
and exclusion are intertwined with students’ sporting skills and peer groups that have
hierarchical structures that become visible, for example, in team selection situations.
In the field of arts education, Kankkunen (2004) examines the construction of gender
in upper-school fine arts classrooms. Her study illuminates the ways that gender becomes
significant in the classroom in the forms of: differences in styles of being and doing, aesthetic
values, subject matters and in the crafting of student artworks. Issues of gender become
particularly evident, for example, when teachers are setting tasks or giving instructions,
or when the representations of men and women in the media are discussed in classroom
conversations. Differences and gendered boundaries are constructed in classroom
discourses, in actions, speech- and picture-making, interactions and conversations, but
they were also contested and deconstructed. Lehikoinen (2006) locates his study on boys
in dance education at the intersection of dance studies and the sociology of masculinity.
He points out multiple prevailing and intertwining discourses that underpin stereotypical
views about boys as a uniform entity with certain kinds of biological and cultural qualities,
and fixed gendered interests, thus positioning dancing boys at the margins. Furthermore,
Anttila (2003) addresses gender issues in her study on dialogue in dance education. She
calls for critical awareness in education and teaching, and holds that education, specifically
art education, neglects social relations, imagination, play and art.
In music education, a notable amount of studies of gender issues (e.g. Barry 1992;
Cooper 1995; Delzell & Leppla 1992; Fortney, Boyle & DeCarbo 1993; Hargreaves,
Comber & Colley 1995; Ho 2009; Schmidt 1995; Zervoudakes & Tanur 1994; North,
Hargreaves & O’Neill 2000; Hall 2005) focus on the relations of gender and various
aspects of musical performance, such as students’ instrument choice and learning, singing
accuracy, musical preferences and students’ perceptions of teacher feedback (Rouston &
Misawa 2011). Sexism and exclusionary practices are examined, for example, in studies
on music education textbooks (Koza 1992, 1993, 1994) and on children’s song materials
(Morton 1994; Leppänen 2010). In her study, Leppänen (2010) examines children’s
music culture in Finland, asking what kinds of conceptions, for instance of gender or
ethnicity, are available to children through children’s music. She suggests that Finnish
children’s songs offer stereotypical views about gender identities, their qualities and
relations; and, therefore, these songs guide children to a certain kind of understandings
23
of gender. Children’s song images of activity and passivity, private and public, heroism
and crossing the norms are often normative and gender-specific in a way that directs and
limits the processes of children negotiating gender. Furthermore, studies view female
experts practicing in music, such as McWilliam’s (2003) study on the depiction of female
wind-band conductors in The Instrumentalist Magazine. All and all, as Roulston and
Misawa (2011) among others suggest, this kind of literature shows the disproportional
representations of men and women in music, but also how these representations differ
from one another.
A large body of studies have drawn on feminist or post-structuralist theories in order
to critically discuss pedagogical and research practices in music education (Gould 1994,
2004; Lamb 1996, 1997; Green 1997, 2002; O’Toole 1994, 1997, 1998). These writings have
discussed the feminist values of music education as rooted in socially-based and studentcentred orientation, which emphasizes the process of becoming, and personal assimilation
of culture rather than simply mastering a specific body of knowledge (Coeyman 1996;
Lamb et al. 2002). Moreover, feminist compensatory research has been vital for the efforts
in pursuing democracy and equal opportunities in music education by making girls and
women in music practices visible, and by “representing gender as meaningful in situations
where the facts were not known or the meaning not recognized” (Lamb et al. 2002,
655). For instance, Lamb (1995, 1996) has explored the contradiction between feminist
pedagogy and the hegemonic structure of music and music education, arguing that the
master-apprentice tradition in music education is the source of the silencing of women’s
musical voices (Lamb et al. 2002).
The gendering of music as an activity and the gendering of musical practices have
been the focus of Gould’s (1992a, 1994) and Dibben’s (1999, 2000, 2002) writings on
gender identity and music. Gould (1994) depicts the practice of music education as being
gendered male and female simultaneously, thus causing contradictions; Gould suggests a
transformation of the ‘music educator’ concept (Lamb et al. 2002). Although the musical
canon in-large is seen as male, McGregor and Mills (2006) have suggested that music
is considered to belong to the affective domain and is therefore related to the realm of
femininity practice. According to Bennetts (2013), in the school context, this conception
serves to construct music as a ‘girls’ subject’. Boys’ absence in music programs has
been a widely-acknowledged concern. Their participation in music and the strategies for
encouraging boys’ participation have been discussed, for example, in the writings of Adler
and Harrison (2004) and Lamb, Dolloff, and Howe (2002). Moreover, the relations of
middle-school boys’ musical participation and the school context have been examined
in Bennetts’s (2013) inquiry: Bennetts’s study highlights the significance of the school
context in the promotion of musical participation in either reinforcing or interrupting
24
and challenging gendered stereotypes (ibid.). Green’s (1997) study illuminates processes
involved in negotiating gender identity through musical participation, beliefs and
preferences. Her findings show a number of attitudes about gender-appropriateness in
musical practices, for example, that girls are not seen to posses the necessary abilities
for composition. Green suggests that the music education curriculum can offer vital tools
in reconsidering gender politics by contesting gendered musical meanings, in terms of,
for example, musical canons, role models and activities associated with the realms of
feminine or masculine practices and cultural expectations.
Music teachers’ perceptions and practices have been studied, for example, in
McIntosh’s (2000) inquiry on teacher-student interaction in the music classroom. This
study shows that boys receive a disproportional amount of teacher-student interaction, and
that students’ behaviours and student-initiated interactions notably influence the teacherstudent interaction, in that teachers often simultaneously respond to student behaviour
in their interactions with students. So according to McIntosh, teachers should pay more
attention not only to the equal treatment of male and female students, but to the ways
they respond to student behaviour. Roulston and Misawa (2011) have looked at music
teachers’ experiences and constructions of their classroom practices in relation to their
conceptualizations of gender. They argue that music educators should consider gender as
a relevant concept in music education, and in doing so, examine their own presumptions
about teaching and learning music, and the ways feminine and masculine practices are
negotiated in the spaces of learning music. These practices are also one of the key interests
of this study. Moreover, they point to the importance of teacher education in preparing
future teachers to resist the dominant constructions of gender that amplify the stereotypical
performances among the students and teachers. Another perspective is taken by Charles
(2004) who examines how children construct gender by adopting and reproducing ideologies
associated with female and male’s musical practices in music education, and how these
gendered ideologies may affect their expectations, specific practices and their musical
compositions (see also Roulston & Misawa 2011). Charles’ findings suggest that among
these students the girls developed a ‘female musical subculture’ for their participation
in the compositional world. Despite this, he demonstrates that the children, in their own
musical practices, were not producing ideological assumptions about gendered musical
practices; this is seemingly in a contradiction to how they operated discursively as their
discourse was influenced by gendered musical ideologies. Furthermore, Charles’ study
explicates teachers to be strongly affected by gendered ideologies because they displayed
stereotypical expectations about the music that girls and boys produce.
25
A number of recent studies discuss the current themes in music education, such as new
technologies and digital learning spaces, and informal learning, for instance, in popular
music practices. In her study considering how gender difference is constructed in a music
technology classroom, Armstrong (2011) reveals that, with the familiarization of music
technology, boys are more and more dominating musical practices in music classrooms,
and girls are becoming more and more underprivileged (see also Seddon 2012). Armstrong
(2011) suggests that male teachers and students “actively produce gendered technological
cultures that position female pupils in a marginalized role that stands outside of the male
produced culture” (p. 61). Moreover, her results demonstrate that boys are often awarded
higher status due to teachers holding that boys are more creative than girls. Similarly,
Abramo’s (2011) inquiry on gender and popular music in the school classroom examines
how students’ perceptions of sexual identity affect their participation. His findings indicate
that boys used popular music practices to project their sexual identity. This was evident,
for example, in their refusal to participate in musical acts, such as singing in a high range
or writing lyrics in a rock band context, even though these acts were not identified as
problematic within traditional music ensembles and genres. In a different vein, Björck’s
(2011) study focuses on gender equality and girls’ and women’s access to participation in
popular music practices. She holds that the enhancement of gender-equity in the popular
music classroom calls for consideration of school-governance cultures; the composition
of student groups; and the various ways that teachers and students perform gender in a
classroom. For a reflexive practice of music education, Björck proposes that teachers should
train pedagogical skills in order to critically observe how the social norms are constructed
and sustained in and out school. In her work, Borgström Källén (2014) highlights and
problematizes how gender, in interplay with genre practice, is expressed and constructed
in musical action among Swedish upper secondary art programme students. The findings
indicate that gender construction in musical action is salient in almost every situation
where the participants made music together, but that they perform differently depending
on the genre practice. Furthermore, the study points out that the participants put gender
at stake when it comes to relations of production, power and symbols. Nevertheless, the
students’ choices, in terms of educational content in their musical learning, seem to be
strictly gendered, in that way restricting their acting space. Despite a large body of studies
viewing gender in school environments, the Finnish music classroom, however, still lacks
research related to gender.
In this chapter, I have provided a selected overview of some of the research conducted
in the field of gender and education. A large body of the studies that I introduce, express
about the complexity of gender – just as any human interaction is complex – and the
importance of considering gender issues in music education. In the next section, I introduce
the Finnish Basic Education in the Arts-system and the study’s context.
26
1.2 Introducing the context of the study
Basic Education in the Arts
This study has taken place in a context of an extra curricular music school guided by the
policy of Basic Education in the Arts. Basic Education in the Arts is a voluntary activity,
usually organized by public or private extracurricular art institutions. It is arranged
according to the Act and Decree on Basic Education in the Arts (FNBE 1998) and
follows the Framework Curriculum (FNBE 2002) given by the Finnish National Board
of Education. According to the Basic Arts Education Act, Basic Education in the Arts is
goal-oriented, advancing from one level to another, providing the students with facilities
for self-expression as well as a basis for potential vocational studies in higher education. It
is organized mainly for children and adolescents, however, in addition, may be organized
for small children and adults (Koramo 2009; Korpela et al. 2010).
The Basic Arts Education Act designates the aims in education and legislates the
conditions for organizers, collaboration, curriculum guidelines, student selection,
evaluation, personnel, state subsidy and student fees. Based on the number of students and
the confirmed number of lesson hours given, the education providers may receive statutory
government transfers (Koramo 2009; Korpela et al. 2010). The fundamental principles of
the Finnish educational system, like every child’s right to the equal access to educational
resources or a student-centered approach in teaching, are articulated in the act.
The Finnish Basic Education in the Arts is organized in various fields of the arts,
including music, literary arts, dance, performing arts (circus and theatre) and visual
arts (architecture, audiovisual arts, visual arts and crafts). In 2014, the government (the
Ministry of Education and Culture) funded 88 music institutes and 41 schools offering
other art forms. Of all the students participating in Basic Education in the Arts in 20072008, 49,8% received instruction in music (Koramo 2009; Korpela et al. 2010).
A network consisting of extra-curricular music schools and conservatoires
encompasses most parts of the country, that are specialized either in teaching western
art music, pop/jazz music, folk music or offer various styles of teaching. A majority of
these institutions follow the Framework Curriculum established by the Finnish National
Board of Education. In addition to educational aims, goals and a conception of learning,
the Framework Curriculum includes guidelines for the content, extent and evaluation
of music studies. It may encompass two kinds of syllabi, general (2005) and extended
(2002). The general syllabus emphasizes the joy and freedom of independent study, as
well as collaborative music-making. The teaching objectives are customized according
27
to the individual aims of the students. The extended syllabus additionally focuses on the
special aptitudes needed for vocational and higher education; extended syllabus students
are usually selected by entrance examinations. Music schools frame their own curricula,
and can independently define the content and the subjects taught within the Framework
Curriculum (FNBE 2002; 2005; Koramo 2009; Korpela et al. 2010). The difference of
these two syllabi is substantial as the general syllabus reaches the whole generation of
children and adolescents, whereas extended syllabus involves only a selected amount of
students that receive tuition in various fields of extra curricular arts education.
According to the Framework Curriculum, the general objectives of music teaching
in Basic Education of the Arts are to support the development of students’ personalities,
to help children and adolescents mature into mentally-balanced and aesthetically- and
ethically-sensitive persons with strong self-confidence; to nurture students’ lifelong love
for, and interest in, music; to guide students towards focused and persistent way of working
in and through music collectively or as individuals; and to open up possibilities for future
vocational training and higher education in the arts (FNBE 2002, 6; Korpela et al. 2010).
However, sometimes there are hindrances that interfere in the processes of learning. This
study examines how social factors, such as gender, may complicate classroom interactions,
thus preventing students from constructing memberships and acting collectively as a
community of learners.
Largely, the focus of teaching in music schools, from primary school to more advanced
levels, is on one-on-one musical lessons. Despite this shared focus, instruction style may
vary from one to another, and it may also occur as small-group teaching or in larger
groups, such as orchestras and choirs. Courses are offered on all classical, jazz, folk and
rock band instruments. In addition, teaching is offered in various theoretical subjects, such
as music theory, solfége lessons involving ear training, music reading and writing skills
and music history classes (FNBE 2002, 9; Korpela et al. 2010).
The teaching of music theory in Finland
This inquiry was conducted in a Basics of Music classroom in which children learn,
among other things, music theory and solfége. Unlike in many other countries, in Finland,
music theory, including solfége (designated here as Basics of Music / Musiikin perusteet,
and referred to later as BoM), is taught as a separate subject starting from the elementary
level. This practice, originally initiated by musical instrumental teachers, goes back to
the early 1970s. Before that time, theoretical subjects and sight-reading were taught in
tandem with musical instrumental teaching. Furthermore, sight-reading was taught in
28
school as part of general music education. In 1978, a music theory course was added to the
of the music-school curriculum nationwide as a mandatory component (Länsi-Helsingin
musiikkiopisto 1995).
In the late 1980s and particularly in the ‘90s, the aims and subjects offered by music
schools, which was closely regulated by Association of Finnish Music Schools (Suomen
Musiikkioppilaitosten liitto), were under re-evaluation because it they were considered to
be too narrow. A wider range of musical styles was required from classical to pop and jazz,
in addition to lessons in improvisation and music technology. Moreover, the examination
system and mandatory theory lessons were criticized as not meeting the needs of all
students. (Heimonen 2002, 195) Until 1998 in music theory and solfége, learning outcomes
were tracked by annual standard tests given by the Association of Finnish Music Schools.
The Framework curriculum (FNBE 2002) distributed in 2002 emphasized nurturing
students’ lifelong relationship with music, and the possibilities for self-expression in and
through music. During the past decade, in order to better correspond to these overarching
aims, the Association of Music Theory and Solfége Teachers (Mutes Ry) has actively
participated in reforming the BoM course, emphasizing creative and hands-on approaches,
integrated with creative music-making, such as composing. In 2013, a working committee
appointed by the Association of Finnish Music Schools released new instructions
concerning the objectives, contents and assessment for the BoM course.
BoM Rationale
In this inquiry, I examine the classroom discursive practices in my own BoM classroom,
such as artefacts, experiences and practices shared by the students and myself, as the
teacher. Throughout the study, I also discuss my pedagogical aims, choices and practices
that were facilitated in the course of the data collection. Of all the instructional domains,
pedagogical practices in music theory are probably the most unmapped (Schwartz 2012).
The studies that do exist are in higher education, like Ilomäki’s (2011) study on pianists’
aural-skills, and Schwartz’s inquiry on undergraduate music theory pedagogy (2012).
Traditionally, music theory as a subject is mainly understood as consisting of formal
musical knowledge, such as facts, concepts, descriptions and theories, in other words,
textbook-types of information about music. For many of us, hearing the words ‘music
theory’ brings up images of scales, key signatures and roman numerals, that is, abstract
concepts, rather than actual tangible understanding of musical processes and events
(Rogers 2004, 5). Consequently, the musical knowledge easily remains inert (Whitehead
1929) and disconnected from skills (Ilomäki & Holkkola 2013; Kuoppamäki 2010).
29
Although music-theory learning traditionally takes place inside a theory classroom and
is understood as supporting students’ musical instrumental studies and their development
of musicianship skills, it traditionally excludes actual music-making. However, connecting
the knowledge to its practical use is not always simple. A 9-year-old student of mine once
asked: “Is this the same G major as the one in my instrumental lesson?” Her question
illustrates how long a conceptual journey is, for example, from the BoM classroom to a
musical instrumental lesson (Kuoppamäki 2010). Philosopher and educational reformist
John Dewey considered this problem in a wider educational context over a hundred years
ago when he introduced his Laboratory School. In 1966, he writes: “The divorce between
learning and its use is the most serious defect of our existing education. Without the
consciousness of application, learning has no motive to the child” (1966a, 73). Dewey
claims that children’s own instinctive and impulsive actions are the origin of all education.
At the same line, researcher on psychology of music education Margaret Barrett (2005)
suggests that identifying the significance of children’s play in the learning processes
helps us to understand the role of musical play in children’s development (p. 261). Hence,
learning by doing is inherent to constructing and testing knowledge.
However, the current BoM teaching aims, articulated for instance in the instructions
given by the Association of the Finnish Music Schools (2013), challenges the longlived practice of separating the theoretical content and its use, claiming it is out-dated.
According to Ilomäki and Holkkola, the course of study in the BoM lessons is increasingly
built upon actual music-making and communication in and through music (Ilomäki &
Holkkola 2013); thus, the learning of concepts and notation is integrated with musicmaking situations (ibid.). Hence, the role of BoM can also be seen as constructing musical
agency that enables one to use musical knowledge in changing musical arenas, formal
and informal, and to construct musical communities (Karlsen 2011; Juntunen et al. 2014).
Understanding BoM in this way gives it a whole new philosophical and social meaning.
According to Westerlund (2002), one of the key competences in practicing musical agency
is the ability to change one’s own experience and social environment. Indeed, many
researchers, such as Blair (2009), DeNora (2000) and Small (1998) emphasize precisely
the social dimensions in constructing agency. Hence, philosophically thinking, BoM can
be understood as an arena or a pedagogical space in which the students can share their
musical interests reflexively, through joint musical activities (Ilomäki & Holkkola 2013).
In the spirit of these new understandings, the objectives of BoM at the elementary level,
articulated in 2013 by the Association of Finnish Music Schools, emphasize students’
capabilities to act and interact musically and to apply theoretical contents in musical
situations, in other words, to build agency in music. BoM’s overall objectives are that
students: 1) gain skills in musicianship; 2) know a variety of repertoire and are familiar
30
with the main styles, phenomenon and instruments of the musical genre they are studying;
3) learn to perceive rhythm, melody and harmony; and 4) gain skills in composition and
improvisation. (SMOL 2013).
The classroom environments in BoM vary depending on the teaching methods used
by the teacher. The methods may involve, for example: singing; musical movement; dance;
drama; visual arts; playing instruments; listening to music; going to concerts; working on
computer exercises; and textbook or other written assignments. Hence, the classroom is
designed suitably according to the activities offered in the course. The students usually
participate in BoM lessons once a week. At the elementary level, the extent of studies
varies from four to six years depending on the program offered by the music school.
BoM at the site of this study
In my classroom, BoM is taught by experimenting with creative and hands-on methods.
The challenge of connecting theory and practice is taken into consideration, for example,
when the students bring their own musical instruments to the BoM classroom. The more
traditional methods of teaching BoM, such as a teacher explaining theoretical contents to
the students or conducting exercises that focus on reading and writing skills of music, are
integrated with workshop-type settings, in which learning musical knowledge may take
place in varying musical situations, such as musical movement, improvising or composing
in a group. This approach is also taken into account when arranging the physical
environment suitable for the alternating classroom activities. Hence, the classroom setting
involves both facilities for working with pen and paper at tables, but also free space, for
instance, for playing instruments or doing bodily exercises, such as body percussion or
dancing. In addition, course content involves, for example, drama, visual arts, architecture
and dance. In this classroom, the students work with their own musical instruments in
order to explore the theoretical contents of the course, including musical structures, scales,
chord progressions, pitches, timbre and rhythmic patterns, by making music together. As
an example, students might learn a musical arrangement as a group, playing in different
keys, and actually inventing a musical situation rather than simply learning key signatures
and how to transpose from one key to another; in this way, the students are giving the
learned knowledge an audible and embodied form. Thus, the pedagogical aim is to
promote understanding of the interrelationships that drive musical processes. From this
angle, learning can be understood as an increasing ability to think musically.
In this BoM classroom, I understand creative music-making in a group as providing
opportunities to explore and experiment with music, and to negotiate and make musical
31
choices. It may also provide potential for students to develop personal meanings and to
create sensitivities to the views and needs of others. Indeed, music education philosopher
Bennett Reimer (1995) describes the engagement in a musical activity as an intense
“self-within-the-world human condition” (p. 1). Hence, musical activity can be seen as
an endeavour of manifesting selfness (ibid). However, in classroom-based learning, this
takes place in interactions with others. Joint music-making, in the form of performing,
composing or improvising, includes both elements of critical self-reflection and shared
decision-making. Thus, it is an interplay of private and public meaning-making. Without
overlooking the importance of joint music-making in shaping individual’s self-identity,
music sociologist Christopher Small (1998) suggests that its significance may be even
more profound on the collective level. Music-making can be used to collectively affirm
and explore identity, and musical interaction may also be thought of as acts of exploring
human relationships. As Karlsen (2011) writes, this provides an opportunity to attend
and to expand “what it means to be on a collective level” (p. 10). Reimer (1995) agrees
that such joint effort to create musical experience collectively adds another layer to the
potential profundity of the musical experience (p. 15). From Small, Karlsen and Reimer’s
perspectives, the BoM classroom can also be viewed as a social intersection for the music
school practices, in which students share their interests and experiences in and through
music.
However, this kind of educational culture does not take place by itself, but calls for
social awareness, sensibility and even persistence. The long process of rethinking and
reconstructing the aims, contents and pedagogical practices in my own BoM classroom
goes back to the late 1990s. In developing new approaches, I soon realized that it was
not so much about myself as a practitioner or about the ways of facilitating learning
environments, but rather about what we accomplished together with the students, about
interaction and cooperation, about community (Kuoppamäki 2010). Hence, I started to
experiment with methods that would invite the students to explore, lead conversations,
ask questions and share opinions about music as a group, while leaving space for making
musical judgements and choices, and developing personal appreciation, understanding
and meaning. In other words, I wanted to nurture spaces of learning that would not just
address topics and ask questions requiring clear-cut right or wrong answers, but would
also encourage the students to deal with ambiguity, and learn that some questions can have
a great many answers (ibid.).
Moving towards a workshop-type of setting, in which students were encouraged to
actively experiment and share views, created new kinds of challenges in terms of social
interaction. Despite my efforts to promote more student-led practices and bring elements
of art, play and invention into the learning processes and the pedagogical culture of the
32
BoM classroom, the interactions often seemed to lack dialogue, cooperation and a sense
of community. It was not easy to achieve the spirit of joint creative exploration. Obviously,
the situation varied from class to class, let alone from week to week. Nevertheless, I was
able to identify some behavioural modes that were more or less analogous to most of the
groups and that, in my mind, called for a closer look in order to better understand the
social dynamics in children’s music classrooms.
Evidently, pursuing such collectivity in learning calls for promoting the social
interactions and the communicative skills of the participants. By communicative skills,
I include both verbal and non-verbal practices, such as gaze, gesture, posture and timing
that are fundamental to on-going participation (see also Rogoff 2003). In this view, all
human cognition and activities are socially and culturally constructed, and occur by and
through communicative processes (Barrett 2005, 263). Hence, as Wenger (1998/2003)
claims, meaning exists neither in us, nor in the world, but in the dynamic relation of living
in the world together with others. Understanding learning from this perspective makes the
practices that support dialogue and participation of particular value in classroom-based
learning. As was the case with the BoM classroom at the site of this study, practice is
always messy and improvised, and requires on-going judgement (Wenger 2009). However,
facilitating experiences of shared negotiation processes and a sense of mutuality and
accountability may turn conflicts into learning opportunities (ibid.); in this way, conflicts
can strengthen the students’ identity as legitimate members of the community, and guide
their way towards becoming independent intellects and agents (Kuoppamäki 2007).
1.3 Socio-cultural approach in the BoM classroom
This study adopts a sociocultural perspective (e.g. Mead 1934/1956; Vygotsky 1978)
that emphasizes social participation as central to learning. For educational philosopher
and psychologist Jerome Bruner (1996), a culture denotes an environment, embodying
‘a set of values, skills and ways of life’ (p. 3) in which we live. Hence, culture can be
understood as the context – such as the BoM classroom of this study – in which individual
members negotiate meanings of the happenings and phenomena. In Bruner’s cultural
view, education is understood as a process of negotiation between the individual and
culture. These processes of negotiation keep culture in on-going change. Moreover,
according to Bruner (ibid.), culture can also be seen as a ‘toolkit’ for sense-making
and communicating, enhancing our contribution in action, perception and thought (p.
126). Language commonly used in a particular cultural setting, including knowledge,
beliefs and values shared by the people of the culture, serves as a good example of such
a toolkit (ibid.; see also Takaya 2008). Consequently, a sociocultural view of learning
33
abandons the traditional view of schooling with its emphasis on individual knowledge and
performance, and it understands the human thought and as potentially action advancing
action in particular social interactions and cultural settings (see e.g. Wenger 1998/2003;
Barrett 2005; Wenger 2006). In this study’s BoM classroom, learning is understood as
depending on the access to shared classroom culture, including its values, practices and
processes of negotiation. Educational theorist Etienne Wenger (1998/2003) describes
participation as the social experience of living in the world in respect to membership
in social communities, and active involvement in joint enterprises. In the classroom, in
a community of learners, students can manifest their learning by participating actively
in the classroom’s social and intellectual practices (Yamakawa et al. 2009). This does
not, however, mean that the participants inevitably share the same meanings with regard
to these activities, but “they share the process of engagement and construction of their
subjectively unique understandings of their participation based on the communicated
messages across and within activities and participants’ past experience of certain practices”
(R. Engeström 2009, 262; see also R. Engeström 2005; Gutiérrez & Rogoff 2003; Valsiner
2001). The participation process combines modes of doing, talking, listening, feeling and
belonging that involve our whole person, including our bodies, minds, emotions and social
relations. In other words, it is a source of identity (ibid., 56). Learning changes who we
are by changing our capability to participate, to belong, and to negotiate meaning (Wenger
1998/2003, 4, 225-226).
Viewing learning as a form of social participation sets communities and their localized
practices at the centre of the learning and knowing process by directing the ways that
memberships and ownerships of meaning are negotiated (Wenger 1998/2003; Barrett
2005; Paechter 2003). Consequently, in social contexts, learning depends on our ability to
contribute to shared meaning-making, to engage in activities, claim identities and relate
to artefacts (Wenger 1998, 55-6). In other words, “who gets to learn and what is learned
is connected to the social relationships constructed in classrooms” (Gutierres et al. 1995,
445). Thus, classroom is a dynamic system of relationships and structures, mirroring
larger societal structures and power relationships (Aronowitz & Giroux 1993; Freire &
Macedo 1987; Giroux 1988). Rethinking ‘learning’ within a social theory framework has
implications on three levels. First, for individuals it means that learning involves both
engaging in and contributing to the shared practices of their communities. Secondly, for
communities it means that learning is a matter of renewing their practices and ensuring new
generations of members. Finally, for organizations it means that learning encompasses the
sustainment of the interconnected communities of practice; it is through this community
practice that an organization knows what it knows, thus becoming more effective and
valuable as an organization (Wenger 1998/2003, 7-8; see also Rikandi 2010).
34
Communities of practice
In this inquiry, the concept of ‘community of practice’, first introduced by Lave and
Wenger in 1987 (Lave & Wenger 1991 /2009; Wenger 2006) and further developed by
Wenger (Wenger, 1998/2003; Wenger, McDermott and Snyder 2002; Wenger 2006), is
used as a lens in articulating and conceptualizing the practices in the BoM classroom.
According to Wenger, community of practice is not a synonym for ‘group’, ‘team’ or
‘network’. Namely, a group of learners neither automatically forms a socially supportive
context for learning to take place nor forms a community. Almost a century ago, Dewey
(MWs) insightfully stated that building up a community requires shared commitment
to the mutual work. According to Deweyan pragmatism, we all live in our own world
that is meaningful for us in a way that it cannot be for anybody else; but when acting
together in order to achieve common goals, we have to adjust our individual approaches,
perspectives and actions so that others are able to respond (Biesta & Burbules 2003, 12).
This process of communication, as Dewey describes it, transforms the individual worlds
of everyone involved, creating a shared intersubjective world (ibid.). Such a notion of
‘practical intersubjectivity’ (Biesta 1994) with other people through action resonates with
Lave and Wenger’s (1991) ideas about what it takes to engage in collaborative learning.
Similarly as Deweyan pragmatist philosophy, Lave and Wenger do not set the individual
against the social and communal. Rather, the individual and social can be seen as mutually
constitutive. Hence, to form such a profitable environment – a community of practice –
requires mutual engagement, joint enterprise and shared repertoire (Wenger 1998/2003,
73-74). This means that social relations rest on mutual respect, a sense of belonging and
cooperation and allow all participants’ full membership and access to negotiation and
learning (ibid.), enabling, for instance, learning from peers.
While acting and interacting within and across events, members of a classroom
community construct normative patterns of life (Gutierrez et al. 1995). These scripts are
defined by particular social, spatial and language patterns that community members use as
resources in order to interpret others’ engagement and guide their own participation (ibid.).
According to Gutierrez (1993), a script then stands for an orientation that the participants
come to expect after repeated interactions at a site that is constructed both in place and
time. However, the BoM classroom under study was an entirely new community of
learners. Hence, the norms and shared practices were only starting to be negotiated and to
take shape. In that sense, the concept of a community of practice or a learning community
(Wenger 1998/2003) at that stage represented rather an ideal, that is, something that the
BoM classroom so far was only aiming to become. Consequently, building up a community
for learning to take place was my ideal as a teacher; and also articulated in the Finnish
National Core Curriculum; however it might not have been some of the students’ ideal.
35
Having access to such processes, in which the meanings, practices, social rules and
hierarchies are negotiated, is fundamental to the construction of agency (Wenger 2006;
McNay 2004). In this study, agency is understood as socially constructed and a part of
communities, cultural conceptions, social norms and relationships (McNay 2004). Hence,
the theory of communities of practice brings together social theory and learning theory.
The community and its practices represent a social structure; the memberships and
engagements in practice – that either promote or compromise access – represent agency
(Wenger 2006). In a community of practice, every member plays a significant part. They
come to the community with different interests and ways of contributing to mutual goals;
in that way, the community of practice is in constant change (Wenger 1998/2003; 2006).
Engeström (1999) shares this view of a changing community of practice by holding multivoicedness as one of the key components of a community as an activity system, which
may be formed by diverse views, traditions and interests. This study particularly explores
the ways that gender becomes intertwined with the processes of negotiating identities and
musical agency in the BoM classroom.
Memberships and ownerships of meaning
The different modes of participation that shape our identities are related to the
communities in with which we engage, and the ability to shape the meanings that define
these communities (Wenger 1998/2003, 188). According to Wenger (ibid.), the shaping of
identity formation is a dual process, first, a result of tensions between our investments in
various forms of belonging, and secondly, a result of our capability to negotiate significant
meanings. The processes that define our memberships (identification) and our ownership
of meanings (negotiability) form in Wengerian terms: the social ecologies of identity.
By ‘identification’, Wenger (1998/2003) refers to a socially-organized process of
identifying as something or someone, such as a category or role, while at the same time,
identifying with something or someone (p. 191). In this sense, identity is the core of
social nature, a locus of social selfhood, and also a social power; identity is the power
to belong, to be a certain person and to claim a place with legitimacy of membership
(Wenger 1998/2003, 207). Thus, we build a community of practice through a process of
identification by working out our relations with each other, and by defining the forms of
memberships (p. 192). The social relations that regulate membership formations can be
driven, among other things, by gendered negotiations. These gendered manifestations are
of key interest to this study. From the teacher perspective, understanding the dynamics
that drive the social interaction in pedagogical situations is vital in order to support
students’ identity negotiations and facilitate collective learning experiences. According to
36
Wenger (ibid.), the experience of mutuality and accountability when engaging in shared
enterprises is central to identification.
The ability to contribute, take responsibility for and shape the meanings that are
important within a social structure, such as a BoM classroom, refers to the other aspect
of identity: ‘negotiability’ (Wenger 1998/2003). According to Wenger (1998/2003),
negotiability creates ownership of meaning (p. 197) and designates “the degree to
which we have control over the meanings in which we are invested” (ibid., 188). In that
sense, negotiability refers to our position in social spaces. Engaging in such negotiation
processes calls for cultural literacy (Schirato & Yell 2000), “a familiarity with the rules
and conventions of a culture; and a feel for negotiating those rules and conventions”
(p. 17). Hence, as Wenger (1998/2003) claims, negotiability can operate both as a source
of participation but also as a vehicle of non-participation (p. 203).
According to feminist music education scholar Elizabeth Gould (2007), participation
is specifically, if not exclusively, one of the main features of carrying out democracy.
In music education, equality is typically seen as “equal opportunity or equal access to
educational and musical resources”, for instance, “equal access to power in studentteacher interactions through students making choices and decisions, or at least voting on
issues” that affect them (p. 231). However, it is not only through the practices in which we
engage we build our identities, but just as importantly, it is through the practices in which
we do not engage (Wenger 1998/2003, 164). In other words, what we are not can play a
significant role in how we come to define ourselves. Hence, a mix of participation and
non-participation shapes fundamental aspects of our lives. This mix defines how we locate
ourselves in a social landscape, what we care about, what we miss out on, what we try to
know and relate to, what we choose to ignore, with whom we want to associate and whom
we avoid, and how we engage and direct our energies (p. 167-168). Within a community
of learners the modes of participation and non-participation are intertwined, among other
things, with gendered negotiations and with the adoption of group identities; thus, the
modes of participation operate as a source of social power.
To summarize, learning depends on our ability to engage in activities, identities and
artefacts in social contexts. The artefacts or ‘reifications’ in Wengerian terms, such as
abstractions, tools, symbols, stories, terms and concepts, are produced through mutual
engagement (1998/2003, 59). Mutual engagement in the negotiation process involves both
meaningful proposal production, and the adoption of these proposals. Taking part in such
negotiations calls for mutuality and cooperation. More specifically, it requires legitimacy
in order for participants to contribute and take responsibility for the shared enterprises
within a social body (Wenger 1998/2003, 197). Ferm (2004) shares this view by suggesting
37
that intersubjective creation of meaning through shared responsibility is central to musical
interactions in school (see also Olsson 2007). In this sense, ‘economies of meaning’
(ibid.), that is, our possibilities to participate in the processes of negotiation, reflect power
relations, which regulate the building of ownership of meaning. A sense of ownership
depends on one’s own conceptions of the range of possibilities to use the constructed
knowledge; in that way, ownership is central to meaning-making and the construction of
agency. On the teacher’s part, this requires a sensitivity to students’ previous experiences
and an awareness to promote new initiatives (Ferm 2004). However, ownership of meaning
can also be compromised by social boundaries, which can inhibit access to participation
and meaning negotiation. Causes of inhibitive social boundaries may include various,
intersecting modes of difference, including ethnicity, class, gender, age, sexuality and
place. This study specifically explores the ways that gendered negotiations are manifested
in a children’s music classroom, specifically, participating in a BoM course.
1.4 Learning and gender
In this section, I discuss the wide and complex issue of gender in the context of education.
Instead of attempting to be comprehensive, I will view it particularly from a perspective
that contributes to understanding children’s gendered interactions while learning music
in a group. Relevant to this study as a whole, I focus on the relations of: gendered learner
identities (Paechter 2006; Gordon 2006a; Wenger 1998/2003); gendered border work
(Thorne 1993; Bredesen 2004; Paechter 2006; Connell 2009; Berg 2010); and building
musical agency (e.g. Karlsen 2011).
First, before getting started, the use of terminology requires some explanation. In this
inquiry, I have chosen to use the terms ‘girl’ and ‘boy’ when referring to female and male
students; I made this decision, first, for clarity, and secondly, in order to emphasize that my
focus is on children’s gendered negotiations. This does not, however, mean that I would
not be aware of the fact that using such terms is potentially problematic. There are two
main concerns regarding the use of these terms. First, although it is commonplace to think
that there are only two biological sexes, and that this ‘two-sex-model’ is straightforward
and solid (Mikkola 2011), researchers have shown that this perception is false, estimating
that 1,7% of the population fall outside of the two-fold sex-categorization (Fausto-Sterling
1993, 2000a, 2000b). According to Mikkola (2011), intersex people illustrate that sexual
attributes associated with females and males do not always align, and that some individuals
may have a blends of both attributes (see also Fausto-Sterling 1993b, 2000a, 2000b; Stone
2007). Consequently, drawing on Fausto-Sterling, Stone (2007, 44) argues that ‘sex’ is a
cluster concept, meaning that it is adequate to satisfy enough of the sex attributes that tend
38
to cluster together in order to qualify a person as being of a particular sex. For Stone, sex
is a matter of degree. One can be more or less male/female, but making a strict distinction
between the two is misleading (Stone 2007; Mikkola 2011). Furthermore, transsexuality
is further evidence that biological sex is not to be something straightforward and definite.
My second concern regarding the use of the terms ‘girl’ and ‘boy’ relates to gender
theorist Judith Butler’s (1993) claim that making categorizations such as ‘girl’ or ‘boy’
involves evaluative and normative commitments. According to Butler (1990/1999), sexed
bodies do not exist outside social meanings. Therefore, our understanding of gender
shapes our conceptions of sex (ibid., 139; see also Mikkola 2011). From this perspective,
sexed bodies are not empty substances on which gender is constructed, but we discursively
construct gender, meaning that sexed bodies are what they are because of what we ascribe
to them and how we classify their traits (Butler 1993; Mikkola 2011). Therefore, for Butler,
sex assignment is always normative (1993, 1). She argues that calling a newborn a ‘girl’
or a ‘boy’ is not a descriptive but a normative claim, a ‘speech act’ (ibid., 7). In speech
act theory, it is discursive practice that names, enacts and produces performative gender
(ibid., 13).
The Conception of gender
No uniform agreement about gender is available, and the concept of ‘gender’ is as highlycontested as it is multiply-defined. For one, it can be seen as a role, as doing, as a style, as
a habit or as an appearance (Ojala et al. 2009). In a simplified sense, ‘sex’ is a category
that we associate more with biology, whereas ‘gender’ is a category that we associate more
with psychological or social construction. Gender scholar Raewyn Connell (2009) argues
that most gender discourses in our society emphasize precisely that dichotomy. In its most
common usage, the term ‘gender’ is conceptualized as “the cultural difference of women
from men, based on the biological division between male and female” (Connell 2002, 8).
Simone de Beauvoir (1972) famously defined gender as becoming, so behavioural rather
than biological; as culturally learned; and as something that develops in relation with one’s
social circumstances (see Mikkola 2011). Beauvoir’s groundbreaking work has resulted
in many interpretations by gender scholars. For example, gender is seen as a causallyconstructed process of socialization that takes place through social learning by observing
the world (e.g. Haslanger 1995). However, social learning theory has been criticized
for being too simplistic to explain gender differences. In these understandings, gender
is viewed, for instance, as feminine or masculine personality (Chodorow 1978; 1995);
emphasizing parenting practices in the processes of constructing gender; or as feminine
or masculine sexuality (MacKinnon 1989), that is, hierarchical and tied to sexualized
39
power relations (Mikkola 2011). In common with the positions outlined above, another
gender perspective considers common conditions that make some individuals women and
some men, so it understands women or men as a group, possessing and sharing some
characteristic qualities, experiences, common conditions and criteria that define their
gender. In this ‘gender realistic’ view, all women are assumed to differ from all men (ibid.)
Gender realism has been criticized by a number of scholars (Spelman 1988; Harris
1993; hooks 2000; Stone 2007) because it fails to view gender alongside other dimensions
of social difference, such as race, class, ethnicity or nationality; thus, it assumes that
all women would share, for example, the experience of a white, middle-class Western
feminist (Mikkola 2011). Butler (1990/1999) criticizes such positions for being normative
by making two claims. First, she argues that such unitary gender notions do not take into
account the cultural, social and political intersections in which people construct identities.
In this way, she is implying that there is some common understanding of what being
a woman [or man] should apply (Butler 1990/1999). Secondly, as discussed above, her
view of ‘identity categories’, including gender, “are never merely descriptive, but always
normative, and as such, exclusionary” (Butler 1991, 160; see also Mikkola 2011).
Performative gender
This study adopts a poststructuralist approach, understanding gender as a fluid, sociallyconstructed and performative structure. In other words, gender is not treated as an outcome
of genetic or biological differences. Instead, masculinities and femininities are seen as
‘real fictions’ that are produced through social agents’ internalized power relations that
are performed in their minds, bodies and behaviours (Foucault 1978; Butler 1990/1999;
see also Archer 2006). In this view, gender is fundamentally understood as relationally
constructed, meaning that notions of ‘maleness/masculinity’ are solely intelligible and
negotiated in relation to the notions of ‘femaleness/femininity’, and vice versa (e.g. see
Davies 1989, 2003; Francis and Skelton 2005; Archer 2006). By performative, I meant that
gender is something one does, not something one is:
... gender is always a doing, though not a doing by a subject who might be said to pre-exist
the deed.... There is no gender-identity behind the expression of gender; that identity is
performatively constituted by the very ‘expressions’ that are said to be its results. (Butler,
1990/1999, 25)
40
Hence, gender is a sequence of acts. ‘Doing’ gender means reproducing certain gestures,
motions and marks that are commonly related to certain physiological features (Berg 2010,
72). According to Mikkola (2011), repeated engaging in ‘feminizing’ and ‘masculinizing’
acts congeals gender, thus falsely giving people an impression of gender as something
they naturally are. However, genders come into existence only to the extent that they are
performed (Butler 1990/1999, 278-9). Stone (2007) shares this view by suggesting that, for
example, “being feminine is just a matter of doing certain activities” (p. 64).
In order to find alternate conceptualizations of gender other than difference and
dichotomy, Connell (2002, 2009) discusses gender as a structure of social relations that
involves a specific relationship with bodies. For her, gender is “a structure of social relations
that centres on the reproductive arena, and the set of practices that bring reproductive
distinctions between bodies into social processes” (Connell 2002, 8; 2009, 11). Connell
(2002, 2009) shares Butler’s (1993) view that bodies cannot be understood as just simply
as the physical objects of social processes, but rather, bodies ares active participants in
social processes, taking part in social agency, and in generating and shaping social conduct
(2009, 11, 57). According to Connell, gender, like other social constructions, is multidimensional, being about identity, sexuality and work, and all of these at once (ibid., 11).
In this view, gender is constructed and reconstructed through our social engagements
in everyday life and thus, can be seen as a situational and on-going process. This resonates
with McNay’s account of gender as lived social relation (McNay 2004). For her, seeing
gender from this perspective brings experience to the centre of social analysis (ibid.). Carrie
Paechter (2003, 138) argues that the ways we end up performing certain masculinities or
femininities in certain contexts can be understood as communities of localized practices.
Consequently, being a man, a woman, a girl or a boy is something that has a different
meaning in different times and places (Berg 2010, 49). These meanings are repeatedly
negotiated within social configurations. Discourse, in this sense, involves the artefacts,
experiences and practices shared by the members of a local community (Gutierrez et al.
1995). Gee (1990) describes discourse as:
… a socially accepted association among ways of using language, of thinking, believing,
valuing, and of acting that can be used to identify oneself as a member of a socially
meaningful group. (Gee 1990, 143)
Hence, in this view of negotiation of identity and the social roles that participants
adopt in communities are best understood in consideration of what people do in shared
participation with one another (Gutierrez et al. 1995).
41
With her notion of heterosexual matrix, Butler (1990/1999), problematizes these
negotiations by asking to what extent the prevailing gendered practices rule identity
formation, and to what extent ‘identity’ is a normative ideal rather than a feature based on
one’s actual experience (2006, 68). She explains:
I use the term heterosexual matrix ... to designate that grid of cultural intelligibility through
which bodies, genders, and desires are naturalized ... a hegemonic discursive/epistemological
model of gender intelligibility that assumes that for bodies to cohere and make sense there
must be a stable sex expressed through a stable gender (masculine expresses male, feminine
expresses female) that is oppositionally and hierarchically defined through the compulsory
practice of heterosexuality. (Butler 1990, 151)
Consequently, a heterosexual matrix suggests that society privileges both masculinity
and heterosexuality (Skelton & Francis 2009).
According to Renold (2006), Butler’s conceptualization of how gender is routinely
spoken through a hegemonic heterosexual matrix (Butler 1990, 1993), and her focus on
the dynamic and citational nature of identity, in which gender is manifested through a
series of repetitive performances that create the illusion of a ‘proper’, ‘natural’ or ‘fixed’
gender, is valuable in theorizing children’s identity-work. As Renold (2006) notes, Butler’s
notion of gender as ‘illusory’ is also a helpful theoretical lens, resonating with children’s
repetitive gendered manifestations as they try to construct a coherent ‘abiding gendered
self’ (Butler 1990, 140), as well as to gain sensible understanding of their confusion at
the impossibility of this task (see Thorne 1993; Davies 1989, 1993). Indeed, in Renold’s
(2000, 2001, 2005) studies, children, on a large scale, articulate difficulties in trying
to make sense of the range of conflicting discourses about “what and how 10-year old
and 11-year old ‘girls’ and ‘boys’ should and should not do or be” (Renold 2006, 498-9).
Hence, as Davies (1989) argues, acting in non-normative ways is not always a question
of choice “but involves grappling with both subjective constraints and the constraints of
accepted discursive practices” (p. 235). Consequently, when trying to make sense of how
gendered negotiations drive children’s interaction in the classroom, it is necessary to ask
what identities are available, and on what conditions and with what consequences crossing
boundaries has in given situations. Identifying these possibilities is necessary in order to
claim an access to the groups and activities of the ‘opposite gender’ (Thorne 1993, 111).
Ole Bredesen (2004) argues that generally speaking, crossing gendered categories seems
to be more dangerous for boys than for girls, whether it is a question of wearing a skirt
in public, playing with dolls, hugging or even focusing on school work, which is often
considered as girl-like. Looking at boys in dance education, Kai Lehikoinen (2006) points
out multiple prevailing and intertwining discourses that underpin stereotypical views about
42
boys as a uniform entity with certain kinds of biological and cultural qualities, and fixed
gendered interests, thus positioning dancing boys to the margins. Furthermore, within
dance education, boys are offered only very limited possibilities for them to individually
negotiate masculinities (p. 275). Rather, they are “subjected to masculinism as a culturally
dominant heteronormative discourse that is produced in boys’ dancing through intertextual
references from Western history writing, literature, popular culture, sports, the military
discourse and nationalism” (p. 276). These findings tell, for one, about the complexity of
this topic and how deeply cultural norms and conceptions are embedded in us. Even more
importantly, they invite us to consider teacher’s responsibilities in facilitating learning
environments that would support individual processes of identification, processes of
identifying oneself as or with someone or something (regarding identification, see Wenger
1998/2003).
Localized femininity and masculinity practices
In educational spaces and in their peer groups, children construct an ideal for what it
means to be a ‘girl’ (group femininity) or a ‘boy’ (group masculinity) (Paechter 2006,
366). However at the same time, they build up an understanding of who they themselves
are in relation to this ideal, thus building up their individual femininities and individual
masculinities (ibid.). According to Paechter (2006), both the child’s individual image
and their ideal image are relational concepts, but in different ways. While neither of
them is uniform, femininity and masculinity are more inclusive, allowing children to
make generalizations, such as “girls are like this or boys are not like that”. While doing
generalizing in this way, children simultaneously build up their individual femininities and
masculinities either in parallel with or in opposition to these perceptions. Both femininity
and femininities, and masculinity and masculinities are built up in local communities of
femininity and masculinity practices (ibid.). What counts here “is a shared understanding
of what it is to be a member of that community” (Paechter 2006, 366; see also Wenger
1998/2003).
Recent studies suggest that girls negotiate femininity (and masculinity) and boys
negotiate masculinity (and femininity) collectively in relation to a variety of outside
influences, conceptions and representations. Within a discourse of defining gender, rather as
something that you do than something that you are, these shifting and interrelated internal
and external influences construct an ever-changing, localized and shared view about, what
‘doing girl’ or ‘doing boy’ implies to, using ‘performative’ terms. In these negotiations,
when falling to gendered border work (Thorne 1993; Bredesen 2004; Connell 2009; Berg
2010), sustainment of stereotypical gendered behaviours and groupings, femininity is
43
defined directly in juxtaposition to masculinity (ibid., 366-367). According to Paechter
(2006), central to this collective construction of femininity and masculinity is that gender
boundaries serve “to draw what for children is a particularly salient boundary: that
between girls and boys” (p. 367). Gaining knowledge about what is locally fundamental
to being a girl or a boy is essential for children, because, for example, it allows a girl to
understand and express to others that she is not a boy, and a boy to understand and express
that he is not a girl (ibid.). However, at the same time, it is important to keep in mind and
acknowledge that girls can certainly behave in what are commonly viewed as masculine
ways, and boys in what are commonly viewed as feminine ways (Skelton & Francis 2002,
2009; Paechter 2006).
Gendered border work
In this study, I argue that participation and the capability to contribute to joint enterprises
are challenged by gendered border work (Thorne 1993; Bredesen 2004; Paechter 2006;
Connell 2009; Berg 2010). As a concept, gendered border work (Thorne 1993) refers to
an age-related phase, roughly between the ages of eight and 12, when children themselves
actively sustain stereotypical gendered behaviours and groupings (see also Davies, 1993).
The ‘joint enterprises’ here refers to the processes of constructing for the participants a new
learning culture that would promote creative musical exploration and student-led practices
in the BoM classroom. This is seen as a mutual project shared by the students and the
teacher, calling for active involvement from all participants. According to Gordon (2006a),
gendered border work is particularly evident in adopting gendered learner identities,
which are evident in the different uses of voice, time and space between the male and
female students, and potentially complicate interactions and hinder participation. In her
book Gender Play (1993), Thorne considers gender differences to be typically situational,
that is, emphasized in some situations and ignored or overridden in others. Consequently,
as Connell (2009) puts it, gender difference is not something that simply exists (p. 15),
it is something that must be made to happen. In other words, children are not passively
socialized into gendered categories, but create their own agency in learning gender by
moving in and out of gender-based groupings (p. 16). This also means, however, that
gender difference can also be unmade, revised and made more or less important (p. 15).
According to the Danish sociologist Jan Kampmann (in Bredesen 2003), every
generation of children reinvents gender and use it as a tool and indicator of social inclusion
and exclusion (p. 30). In the BoM classroom, girls and boys preferred sitting at tables in
single-gender groups, they preferred doing group assignments in single-gender groups,
and when asked to join in musical exercises, girls selected a place next to the other girls
44
and boys next to the other boys; inevitably, there was always a gap between these two
‘camps’. With these gendered indicators, children experiment with their identity, testing
and playing with gender potentials and limits. In her study when considering situations in
which gender differences were emphasized or de-emphasized, Thorne (1993) notices that
although teachers sometimes emphasize gender, for instance, by arranging a classroom
learning game with the girls competing against the boys, most teacher-led activities
de-emphasized gender. In such situations, the division was not between the ‘groups of
girls and boys’, but rather between the teacher and the students (see also Connell 2009).
Likewise, Ericsson and Lindgren (2010) notice that teacher presence seems to reduce such
divisions. Alternatively, Olsson (2007) argues, in the absence of a teacher, when there is
no-one to guide the space-claiming processes, the possibilities for social hierarchies to
govern are opened.
Gendered agency
Feminist educational research has suggested that agency is gender-differentiated (e.g.
Cohen 1996; Butler 1990/1999; Renolds 2006b; Francis 2000; Francis and Skelton 2005,
2009; Gordon 2006a, 2006b). The idea of a learner, a knower and an achiever identity
is seen as more masculine than feminine (Cohen 1996). Thus, in this understanding,
practicing agency is associated more with masculinities while femininities are associated
more with self-control (Gordon 2006a). Further, recent literature (Skelton and Francis
2009; Renold 2001; Maynard 2002) suggests that this self-control and rational behaviour
is expected from girls in educational contexts. In their school ethnographies, Gordon (et.
al. 2000) and Tolonen (2001) discover that embodied activities and use of the girls’ space
of girls were more regulated and differently interpreted than embodied activities and use
of the boys’ space. According to Gordon (2006a, 6), the figure of an active, mobile boy
is attached to the cultural image of that masculinity and activity as naturally connected.
Hence, when entering educational spaces, boys often seem have more autonomy over
their embodiment and their location in spatial relations (Gordon 2006b, 288). In addition,
Gordon (2006a) claims that girls’ use of student voice seems to be more strictly controlled
than boys’ use of student voice.
Consequently, the use of voice can be complicated for girls (Gordon 2006a). Drawing
on hooks (1989), she suggests that in order to practice agency, girls must balance between
‘suitable speech’ and the craving to ‘talk back’ (hooks 1989). In other words, as Gordon
(2006a) claims, girls more often face situations in which their voice is considered
inappropriate. For example, in Renold’s (2001) study, teachers described academicallyable girls as ‘overconfident’ and ‘bossy’. Thus, when entering a learning space in an overtly
45
‘agentic’ manner, girls may experience tension between their gender and their agency.
With the term ‘agentic’, Gordon (2006b) refers to a sense of agency. From her perspective,
agency can be understood as one’s own conceptions about the range of possibilities to
act and interact socially. In that way, agency is contextual and closely intertwined with
processes of identification and negotiability (Wenger 1998/2003; Barrett 2005).
The question of gendered learner identities and gendered agency is complex. The
significance of teacher attitudes in shaping students’ learning experiences is widely
acknowledged in the literature. However, a number of studies suggest that the differential
perception of girls, as succeeding through hard work and boys as naturally clever, still
continues (Skelton & Francis 2009; Francis 1998; Jones & Myhill 2004). This dichotomy
implies that teachers continue ‘reading’ girls and boys according to gender constructions
that “insist on locating talent and ability in the masculine”, Skelton and Francis (2009,
96) argue. At the same time, recent studies on high-achieving students indicate more
similarities than differences between girls and boys (Skelton 2007).
The conceptualization of the ways that gender intertwines with the construction of
agency depends on how gender is understood in the first place. McNay (2004) argues
that if gender is defined as a lived social relation, constructed and re-constructed through
social engagements with others, then gendered agency may be understood through the
concept of experience. Conceptualizing experience more as an outcome of social and
cultural practices rather than an individual property makes it possible to see how our
experiences, that is, our assembled knowledge about gender, drives our understanding of
agency (McNay 2004). Experiences create a sense of continuation, and build up a sense
of who we are as agents, what have we achieved, and in what we are about to engage
(ibid.); our agency locates our interactions in our local communities and into the nexus
of learning. Hence, as Gordon (2006a) states, agency always “takes places somewhere, in
some place” (p. 5).
1.5 Social change in the classroom
Ideally, the classroom is a site for social change. The social processes of learning and
teaching as well as the local settings in which they are situated are never stable (Olsson
2007) and require, as such, constant re-evaluation and readjustment. Understanding
identity as performative clarifies how our behaviour changes depending on with whom
we are interacting, and in what context these actions take place (ibid.). Hence, every
community of learners is different from any other community.
46
The BoM classroom under study consisted of newcomers participating in their first
year of the BoM course. Hence, the workshop-type classroom practices were new to
the students and required their familiarization with creative musical exploration, which
was situated in relatively free, dialogical settings and involving bodily interaction. In
classroom interactions, such processes of negotiation can be messy at times. According
to Goffman (1961), the challenging of both societal and classroom discursive practices
develops within the social space of the classroom ‘underlife’ (see also Gutierrez, et al.
1995). ‘Underlife’ can be defined as the range of activities that are developed in order
to distance oneself from the surrounding institution and may take either disruptive or
restrained forms (Goffman 1961).
Gutierrez et al. (1995) argue, that although underlife develops in every classroom, it
rarely is included in pedagogical practices. Therefore, despite the natural multi-voicedness
of any classroom, student underlife commonly sustains traditional classroom power
relations, in that way, it hinders transformation within the learning community (ibid.).
However, according to Gutierrez et al. (1995), it is precisely this dynamic interrelation
between the official and unofficial scripts, in a third space, which makes the change
possible.
The classroom life, like the one in the BoM classroom, contains various social spaces
with competing discourses that may create tensions and conflicts among the participants
(Gutierrez et al. 1995). However, these sociocultural conflicts can, however, be turned
into positive responses that negotiate shared dialogic meaning among the participants
and bridge the multiple and varied social spaces in the classroom (ibid.). Consequently,
conflicts can drive towards constructing new learning cultures and create opportunities
for third space and social change; in that way, conflicts turn into learning opportunities
(Gutierrez 1995; Wenger 2009). In Finland, The Framework Curriculum (FNBE 2002, 6;
Korpela et al. 2010) given by the Finnish National Board of Education guides education
providers to support the students’ growth into ethically sensitive persons with strong selfconfidence and capability for cooperation and engaging in learning both collectively and
individually.
47
2 Methodological approach and research questions
This study’s initial motive and rationale has been to better understand and respond to the
pedagogical challenges caused by gendered border work (Thorne 1993; Bredesen 2004;
Paechter 2006; Connell 2009; Berg 2010) in a BoM classroom that was in the process
of negotiating new classroom discursive practices among the participants. In order to
comprehend the ambivalence and complexity of gender in children’s musical interactions,
this study focuses on the relations of gendered learner identities (Gordon 2006a); gendered
border work (e.g. Thorne 1993); and the construction of musical agency (e.g. Karlsen 2011)
among 9-year-old music school students learning in a BoM course.
2.1 Research questions
Drawing on Wenger’s (1998/2003) theories of communities of practice and his concept
of the social ecology of identities, through which he discusses the ideal of a learning
community from the perspectives of forming memberships (identification) and gaining
ownership of meaning (negotiability), the main research question posed in this study is:
How is gender performed in the negotiations of the BoM classroom?
Further, the two subquestions are:
1. How does gendered border work drive the negotiation of the forming of memberships
in the BoM classroom); and
2. How does gendered border work drive the negotiation of gaining ownership of
meaning in the BoM classroom?
Although the classroom discourse is always negotiated by everybody involved, including
the teacher and the students, this study focuses on children’s gendered negotiations and
interactions when engaging in BoM classroom activities.By experimenting with different
pedagogical solutions in which the same children participate in classroom discourse in
co-ed (Phase One) and in single-gender (Phase Two) settings, this study seeks to explore
and understand the social phenomenon of gendered border work (e.g. Thorne) and how
gendered border work impacts learning in the BoM classroom. This initial motive also
guided this study’s choice in selecting a suitable methodological approach.
48
Drawing on Deweyan pragmatist philosophy, suggesting that we only know the world
through our own actions (see also Biesta & Burbules 2003), my research interests have
evolved from my own observations in day-to-day life practice as the teacher in a BoM
classroom. I wanted to grasp a social issue that, in my view, was causing tensions and even
inequalities among the students. I wanted to explore it from different angles. Consequently,
this study’s overall aim during the data collection and experiments was to understand the
issues rather than change them. As a teacher one always has visions and hopes for social
change to take place. However, change cannot be designed but needs to be negotiated
between everybody involved. What a teacher can do, is to respond to the problematic issues
and experiment with different solutions. Therefore, understanding a research project as a
fluid, dynamic and an on-going process that seeks to generate knowledge from practice
to practice (Cochan-Smith & Lyttle 2009) methodologically grounds this research as a
practitioner inquiry in the school ethnography fields.
2.2 Inquiry as stance
The general approach of this study is a practitioner inquiry as stance. The notion of
inquiry as stance, defined by Marilyn Cochran-Smith and Susan Lytle (2009), is grounded
in the problems and contexts of practice in the ways that practitioners theorize, study and
act on the problems “in the best interests of the learning and life chances of students and
their communities” (p. 123). Hence, in this study ‘inquiry as stance’ is seen as an attitude,
a pragmatic attitude for living and acting together responsibly in an intersubjective world
(Biesta & Burbules 2003, 108; see also Rikandi 2012; this study p. 26). Therefore, it is not
just instrumental to find out how to get things done, but also social and political; further, it
is necessary to discuss what to get done, why to get it done, on whose terms and in whose
interests. This notion involves an on-going process of problematizing present arrangements
and rethinking the ways that knowledge and practice are constructed, evaluated and used
(ibid., 121). Hence, as stated above, this study focuses on: the dynamics of gendered
border work in two types settings; and how gendered border work is intertwined with the
processes in which learner identities and agencies are negotiated collectively as well as
individually.
Although this study investigates a particular, localized context with particular
participants, it seeks to understand children’s gendered interactions when entering
educational spaces in a way that contributes to the wider conversations of democracy in
music education and learning in general. Epistemologically, this grounds the study to the
notion of inquiry as stance as an organic and democratic theory of action that positions
practitioners’ knowledge, and practitioners and their interactions with students and other
49
participants at the centre of educational transformation (Cochran-Smith & Lytle 2009,
123-4).
Practitioner research
Practitioner research (Cochran-Smith & Lytle 2009) can be defined as a conceptual and
linguistic umbrella for number of modes, versions and variations of educational inquiry.
These varying genres have eight features in common: 1) having practitioners acting as
researchers; 2) making assumptions about links of knowledge, knowers and knowing;
3) locating the inquiry in professional contexts; 4) blurring boundaries between inquiry
and practice; 5) emphasizing communities, networks and other forms of collaboration;
6) holding new conceptions of validity and generalizability; 7) maintaining consistency
in data collection and analysis; and 8) making efforts to maintain transparency with the
inquiries, including and in being open to criticism about the inquiries (ibid. 38, 118).
In this inquiry, as is common to all forms of practitioner research, I simultaneously
take the roles of practitioner and researcher (Cochran-Smith & Lytle 2009). This duality
makes it possible for me to participate in the inquiry process from the inside, focusing on
the problems and questions that arise from the practice in my own professional context,
the BoM classroom (ibid.). After all, one cannot study the social world without being a
part of it (Atkinson & Hammersley 1994, 249). Furthermore, this duality allows me to ask
questions that emerge “from neither theory nor practice alone but from critical reflection
on the intersection of the two” (ibid., 42; see also Biesta and Burbules 2003, 108). Hence,
as in most versions of practitioner research, the role of the local community is central as
the site where knowledge is constructed, used and initially made public. (ibid.).
The students and myself as their teacher raised discussions about the issues confronting
equity and agency, inviting all the participants to reflect on the boundaries that complicate
social interaction in the BoM classroom. Understanding the process of knowledge-creation
in a new way requires new conceptions of validity and generalizability (Cochran-Smith
& Lytle 2009). The new criteria address: democratic validity in respecting and taking
into account all participants’ perspectives and interests; outcome validity in resolving the
problems addressed; process validity in using convenient and sufficient research methods;
catalytic validity in deepening the understanding of all stakeholders; and lastly dialogic
validity in monitoring analyses through critical reflection with peers (ibid., 44).
On-going changes in the power relations among the students required me to constantly
rethink my own views, attitudes and actions as a practitioner. According to Cochran50
Smith and Lytle (2009), what makes practitioner inquiries recognizable is that, alongside
documenting classroom practices and students’ learning, they “systematically document
from the inside perspective their own questions, interpretive frameworks, changes in
views over time, dilemmas, and recurring themes” (p. 44).
Finally, the last trait characterizing practitioner research is the emphasis on making
the enterprise public and open to the critique of a wider community. The focus here is, on
one hand, on the role of peers and inside participants who evaluate the analyses, and on
the other hand, on opening practitioner knowledge to the public outside that community
(ibid., 45).
2.3 Ethnography
In general, ethnography can be understood as a form of research in which social settings
and the perspectives and practices of the people in these settings are studied (Hammersley
2007; Wilson, 2013). In this ethnographic study, I participated in the research process
and the day-to-day life of the BoM classroom, producing knowledge together with all the
participants involved in the process. The aim was to analyse, as multifacetedly as possible,
the cultural and social processes and meanings that agents give to the processes (Gordon
et al. 2000). Moreover, my study explored and experimented with different pedagogical
solutions as an on-going stance of inquiry. Therefore, unlike in ethnography conventionally,
the inquiry is conducted in two different pedagogical settings. As explained above,
this methodology was selected for pragmatic reasons, in order to gain as multifaceted
knowledge as possible of how gendered border work is played out in children’s classroom
interaction.
Similar to an ethnographic study, the data production, interpretation and theorizing
processes overlap with each other. In this inquiry, my acting in a dual role, both as a
practitioner and as the researcher, made it possible to evaluate, reconsider and adjust my
own choices and understandings while moving forward with the project. Generally in
ethnography, knowledge and knowing are attached to a particular time, place and the
observer; in this sense, the study is both contextual and material (Lappalainen 2007, 10-14).
The data, descriptions and narratives are inherently filtered and selected by the researcher.
Hence, the subjectivity of an observation-, inquiry-based study is well acknowledged
among ethnographers (Berg 2010, 85).
This ethnographic inquiry observes and explores practices in which agency is
limited or even excluded (Lappalainen 2007) in the BoM classroom. It newly discusses
51
the complications and even inequalities that children’s gendered interactions may cause
in learning. In that sense, the study is also takes an ethnographic feminist perspective.
Although Beverly Skeggs (2001, 427) argues that there is nothing about ethnography itself
that makes it feminist, she does identify ethnography viewed through feminist lenses as
gender sensitive, reflexive and fragmented (p. 429). Further, Tolonen and Palmu (2007, 93)
characterize ethnographic studies as rich and carefully reasoned analyses that leave space
for interpretations.
Educational ethnography
This study is specifically an educational ethnography. Educational ethnography is rooted
in the North American anthropological tradition (Lahelma & Gordon 2007); it can also
be seen as a continuum to Chicago School sociology, which is particularly interested in
people’s everyday life in local contexts and urban spaces (Akinson 2001b; Deegan 2001). In
Europe, educational ethnography was established primarily in the sociology of education.
When comparing the British and North American practices, Delamont and Atkinson
(1995) find that in the North American practice the focus mainly concerns ethnicity in
classrooms, whereas British sociologists are more interested in social class differences.
One of the important postmodern feminist insights is that differences, such as class,
gender, ethnicity, age and place, should always be viewed in relation to one another as
intersecting elements (Lahelma & Gordon 2007, 30). Consequently, this study examines,
gender as being closely intertwined with age and place.
In Finland, educational ethnography has been influenced mainly by the British
tradition. Today, there are four features common to Finnish educational ethnography: first,
the interest in questions of difference and inequality; secondly the ways that an inquiry is
contextualized within society and the development of schooling, seeking to make a critical
societal analysis; thirdly, the trend of favouring comparative ethnography; and fourthly,
the emphasis on methodological discussions and ethical considerations during the inquiry
process. (Lahelma & Gordon 2007, 29).
Ethnography in BoM classroom
This study further represents classroom ethnographical research. ‘Classroom ethnography’
refers to the inquiry into behaviours, activities, interactions and discourses that takes place
in formal or semi-formal educational spaces (Watson-Gegeo 1997), such as classrooms.
Common to classroom ethnographies are that: the teaching and learning processes are
52
viewed from a sociocultural perspective; and it offers a holistic analysis that is “sensitive
to levels of context in which interactions and classrooms are situated” (ibid., 135). In this
study, the BoM classroom was observed intensively and in detail for one semester and
documented by videotaping the lessons. A method videography (Knoblauch 2006/2009)
has many benefits, for instance, it is enormously data intensive – allowing simultaneous
use of multiple semiotic resources by participants such as sign phenomena in both stream
of speech and the body – and therefore typically used when analysing structures and
patterns of social interaction (ibid.; Goodwin 2009). Moreover, it allows the researcher
to return to the significant events as many times as needed in order to gain nuanced
understanding of the phenomenon under study; and importantly, it enables to share with
others – colleagues, teachers, and the learners themselves – what one sees (Goldman 2007).
Partially gleaned from the video-taped lessons, my observations were then supplemented
by stimulated recall interviews (ibid.) with the participants. When planning this inquiry,
I expressly wanted to give the children an opportunity to reflect on their own experiences
when participating in BoM. According to Tochon (2007), viewing past actions using video
feedback stimulation enables one to remember their thoughts with greater validity than
recall done without video. The research report offers narratives of the classroom settings,
statements of terms on which the classroom was socially constructed, and an account of
social norms that directed participants’ behaviours and shaped their interpretations of
particular interaction (Watson-Gegeo 1997; Erickson 1985).
At times, examining interactions that I was part of, in my own professional context,
was challenging. As a teacher, I inevitably had an active role negotiating a learning culture
in the BoM classroom. According to Hammersley (2007), the researcher’s familiarity
with the site of inquiry must be treated as anthropologically strange when documenting
the perspectives and practices of the observed. Hence, as Delamont and Atkinson (1995)
claim, one of the challenges of educational ethnography is precisely fighting against this
familiarity.
2.4 Research design and data collection
This study’s research design aims at enabling the examining of the topic from different
perspectives. Therefore, I chose to carry out the study in two settings: as working with
all the students together; and as working with the students divided into two groups of
girls and boys. The same children participated in both settings. As stated above, this twoprong approach allowed me to view how gendered border work was intertwined with
the processes in which identities and agencies were negotiated collectively as well as
individually.
53
Data collection
During the 2009 fall semester, I carried out the data collection in an extra curricular
music school located in Helsinki, the capital city of Finland. I had previously tested the
data collection in the 2009 spring semester in order to rehearse my chosen methods. Since
the participants were to consist of beginner students, I contacted their parents by e-mail,
asking them to discuss with their children the possibility of participating in the research
project. My aim was to form a group of eight girls and eight boys, but by the time the fall
semester started and the families finally managed to coordinate their timetables, the group
consisted of six girl and nine boy participants. At this point, I again contacted the parents,
and more carefully explained the idea of my study, acquiring written consent for their
children’s participation. (See Appendix 1)
The data was collected during one semester in two phases. In Phase One, everybody
was working together for eight weeks; in Phase Two, the girls and boys were divided
into separate groups, also for eight weeks. Research data from both Phases includes: 1)
a teacher diary, and 2) video recordings of the lessons with stimulated recall interviews
(Goldman et al. 2007), taken after the last lesson of each phase. It is methodologically
important that the same children were observed and interviewed while participating in
the BoM classroom, both in Phase One and in Phase Two. The first phase consisted of
eight, 45-minute lessons in a mixed-gender environment, followed by stimulated recall
interviews. In the interviews, the students were shown video clips taken from their lessons
that were to be discussed in a relevant interview. The video clips were chosen by me.
Likewise, the stimulated recall interviews were video recorded. The interviews were
conducted in two different settings: 1) two group interviews, one with a group of boys and
one with a group of girls (two group interviews total); and 2) two individual interviews
carried out with boys and two individual interviews carried out with girls (four interviews
total). Each interview lasted approximately 45 minutes, with a total recorded interview
time of 270 minutes.
Hoping to get the richest reflections possible, I tried out various settings when
conducting the stimulated recall interviews (Goldman et al. 2007). I wanted, for example,
to find out if peer-reflection would bring up something that did not appear in one-on-one
situations or in a group context. Moreover, I tried to choose the interviewees accordingly
to the different ways they seemed to position themselves in teaching versus learning
situations. Some students were more ‘social’ and some as more ‘private’. I soon learned,
however, that it was impossible to foresee what course the interview would take. The
intensity of the interviews varied notably.
54
As Beverly Skeggs (1994) writes, researchers can only mediate the sides or parts of their
students’ lives that the students choose to show; from these parts, I, as a researcher, choose
what to report here.
In addition to the video-recordings and interviews, I kept a teacher’s diary in which I
journalled after every lesson, including what had been done, what had gone as planned,
what not, and what my own impressions and feelings were. Between lessons, I watched
and draft-transcribed the video material for the previous week in order to supplement my
notes with the happenings and reflections. (See Appendix 2)
The second phase of data collection consisted of eight, 45-minutes lessons in for
the a divided group of girls, and of eight lessons for a divided group of boys. In total,
combining both phases of the video recordings consisted of 24 lessons. The Phase Two
video recordings were followed by the stimulated recall interviews, largely in the same
manner as the first phase, in two different settings: first, two group interviews, one with a
group of girls and one with a group of boys; and second, two individual interviews carried
out with the boys. With the girls, I conducted one individual interview and one interview
in pairs, as said above, in order to see if reflecting with a peer would bring something new
to the situation. The interviews lasted approximately 45 minutes each, hence 270 minutes
in total. (See Table 1)
55
Table 1: Data collection
Phase 1
Phase 2
Everybody working together
Work divided into groups of 7 girls
Video recordings of the lessons
Video recordings of the lessons
Recorded stimulated recall-interviews:
Recorded stimulated recall-interviews:
1 group interview with girls
1 group interview with girls
2 individual interviews with girls
1 individual interview with girls
(8 lessons)
(8 lessons)
1 group interview with boys
2 individual interviews with boys
Teacher diary
and 9 boys (16 lessons)
(16 lessons)
1 group interview with boys
1 interview in pairs with girls
2 individual interviews with boys
Teacher diary
In the beginning of the video recording, some children paid attention to the video
cameras and made remarks about the fact that the lessons were recorded. After about two
lessons, they seemed to become accustomed to the cameras. As a teacher, I noticed that
it was sometimes difficult to ignore the presence of the video cameras, particularly when
something went differently as I had planned, either better or worse. Hence, it is relevant
to ask “how the medium of video affects and changes the the culture one is studying from
the moment the camera is turned on” (Goldman 2007, 5).
2.5 Methods of analysis
In analysing the data, I turn to the theory of communities of practice introduced by
Wenger (1998/2003) and use multi-methodological lenses. Central to my work is the
concept of a learning community and the ways that one identifies oneself (identification)
and one’s capacity to negotiate meanings (negotiability) as a member of such a community.
As discussed earlier, I aim to understand the dynamic social relations in which learner
identities (e.g. Gordon), agencies (e.g. Wenger 2006; McNay 2004) and gender (e.g. Butler
1990/1999; Connell 2002, 2009) are negotiated when engaging in classroom discourse,
56
and to observe and explore the practices in which agency is either limited or excluded
(Lappalainen 2007), or supported. Further, I discuss both the complications and even
the inequalities that children’s gendered interaction may cause in learning, as well as the
situations in which the social boundaries were crossed and multi-voicedness promoted.
Hence, my focus is in the ways that students construct identities and memberships, and
participate in the mutual shaping of meanings in a BoM classroom. As is common in an
ethnographic study, the phases of conducting my inquiry, including the data production,
interpretation and theorizing, overlapped each other (Lappalainen 2007).
My analysis draws on Braun and Clarke’s (2006) thematic analysis method (TA).
TA is an empirically-driven approach that identifies and analyses the most fundamental
patterns of meaning in a data set (Braun & Clarke 2006; Joffe 2011). Themes can involve
both manifest content and latent, more tacit content. This method often views both types
of content simultaneously, using the manifest themes as a path to understanding the
more latent content. TA uses existing theoretical constructs to examine data but allows:
“emerging themes to ‘speak’ by becoming the categories for analysis” (Joffe 2011, 209).
As explained earlier, when implementing my inquiry, I had three sources of data:
observation data, stimulated recall interviews and a teacher diary. After transcribing
the video recordings and familiarizing myself with my field notes and stimulated recall
interviews, I first approached the data by looking for all possible, various aspects of learner
identity. I was particularly interested in how gender, being a constitutive source of identity,
operates as a vehicle of for inclusion and exclusion in the children’s classroom interaction.
(See Appendix 3 for example of transcription)
So the starting point for my analysis was to use the data in order to identify various
modes of participation; events that could be decoded as promoting participation; and
events that could be decoded as compromising participation (Wenger 1998/2003) in
the student-student and student-teacher interaction. I first used open coding (Kvale &
Brinkmann 2009, 202; Bold 2012, 130), coding very concrete and hands-on notions about
the actions and interactions that took place during the lessons, such as “boys run around”;
“girls/boys select place next to other girls/boys”; “boys sword fight with the dish brushes”;
“girls wait silently in their seats”; “girls and boys play warm-up games together”; “girls
and boys debate topic for group-work task” and so on. I then started to organize, group
and conceptualize the codes by exploring the data and identifying what could be related
to what.
57
In the next stage of analysis, I constructed categories of meanings (Kvale & Brinkmann
2009, 202; Gibbs 2007, 47-48) that related to the actions and events I had identified. In
constructing the categories, I used both concept-driven and data-driven approaches (Kvale
and Brinkmann 2009, 202). On one side, I placed modes of participation that in my mind
were connected to the processes of negotiating identities and memberships (identification)
in the BoM classroom. I identified these categories as “use of student voice”; “mobility
and use of physical space”; and “emphasizing/de-emphasizing gendered groupings”.
On the other side, I placed modes of participation that I thought were connected to the
processes of negotiating and shaping shared meanings and creating ownership in learning
(negotiability). For this side, I selected categories such as “having/not having ones ideas
accepted”; “accepting/not accepting ideas of others”; and “contributing/not contributing
to shared enterprises”. Then I went back to my initial codes and organized them according
to my categories; I noticed that many of the happenings both promoted and compromised
participation depending on from whose perspective their were viewed. (See Table 2)
58
Table 2: Modes of participation
Forms of memberships (identification)
Ownership of meaning (negotiability)
Promoting
participation
Compromising
participation
Promoting
participation
Compromising
participation
Use of student voice
•boys and girls
discuss the
happenings and
the structure of the
penguin story
•girls discuss
the topics of the
focused lesson
•boys protest about
the noise caused by
some of the boys
Use of student voice
•boys talk out of turn
•boys are being
boisterous
•boys chat while
playing instruments
in a group
•girls do not openly
express their
resentment about
interruptions
Having one’s ideas
accepted
•Max introduces a
warm-up game he
knows
•Filip inspires the
others with his idea
when composing
his penguin story
Not having one’s
ideas accepted
•girls try to ‘sweet
talk’ boys into
cooperating with
them
Mobility and use of
physical space
•girls and boys play
warm-up games
together
•girls and boys
participate in doing
musical movement
together
Mobility and use of
physical space
•boys run around
•boys lay on the floor
•boys shove each
other
•girls wait silently
on their seats for
the boys to calm
down
•two girls get into
a quarrel and kick
each another
Accepting ideas of
others
•students try out
different solutions
when composing
together
Not accepting ideas
of others
•girls/boys debate
the topic in drama
group work
De-emphasizing of
gendered groupings
•girls and boys solve
a task with peers
Emphasizing
gendered groupings
•girls/boys select
place next to other
girls/boys when in
circle
•girls/boys sit in
tables with other
girls/boys
Contributing to
shared enterprises
•girls/boys teach
their body
percussions to each
other
•girls/boys
cooperate
in musical
improvisation,
imitating animals
•girls/boys play the
‘conductor game’
together
•boys cooperate in
doing rhythmic
dictation
Not contributing to
shared enterprise
•boys sword fight
with dish brushes
while doing a
collaborative
percussion piece
•boys do not care
about finishing the
drama group task
59
When coding (Kvale & Brinkmann 2009; Bold 2012) and categorizing the data (Kvale
& Brinkmann 2009; Gibbs 2007), I noticed that the student voice operated as a strong
legitimator in the BoM classroom interactions (Arnot 2007), regulating access to
participation. To get a closer look at the use of student voice, I went back to my observation
data, and first, counted the number of times that the students engaging in conversation
during the lessons. I was interested in who was talking and what was the conversation
about. Hence, I wanted gain knowledge about both the amount and the quality of the
conversations. These efforts provided me with an overview of the gendered nature of the
use of student voice in the BoM classroom. (See Table 3 in 4.2.1)
In order to move ahead with the analysis, I selected episodes from the observation data
that seemed significant for meaning condensation (Kvale & Brinkmann 2009, 205-207).
The selected episodes, teacher diary and stimulated recall interviews were understood as
accounts (Atkinson & Coffey 2002). I then used these accounts to organize, re-narrate
and retrospectively construct the events of interaction, including choices that were made
and activities in the BoM classroom; further I interpreted the meanings connected to
the observed happenings (Josselson & Lieblich 2003). The narratives provided select
sources for representations of experiences that offered insight “into characters, events and
happenings central to those experiences” (Coffey & Atkinson 1996, 68).
I then aimed to build overarching themes within the data that would open up
multifaceted insights to the research topic (Braun & Clarke, 2006). I was able to construct
three umbrella themes, namely 1) modes of participation; 2) holding gendered beliefs and
preconceptions; and 3) shifting between ‘good student’ and ‘rebel student’ identities.
I mentioned above that when conducting the analysis, I approached it by using multimethodological lenses. In Chapter 5, I present the characters of ‘Emma’ and ‘Amos’. These
narratives are representative constructions (Bold 2012) based on the reflections of several
children, participating in the activities in the BoM classroom and later in the stimulated
recall interview sessions. The video documentation of the interviews allowed me to return
to the interview ambiances including tones of voice, facial expressions and feelings. This
turned out to be helpful particularly, when constructing the narratives, since sometimes
the ways things are said express more than the actual words. Leavy (2009) suggests that
using such constructions or fictions in analysis “allows the researcher to re-examine his or
her findings in a new context”, which can be beneficial in trying to elaborate the theoretical
or other insights (p. 46). Taking such a standpoint, Frank (2000) identifies fiction as a
problem-solving strategy (see also Leavy 2009, 44). According to Leavy (2009), in terms of
practice, fiction can be used as a part of the methodology that is “consistent with feminist,
postmodern, postcolonial, or other critical perspectives on social power” (p. 46). She holds
60
that the texture of human experience, in my inquiry informed by the classroom discourse,
can be accessed and expressed by using the tools of fiction (ibid.). The aim of including
the narratives in the results chapters was, for one, to attend to the voices of the children
participating in BoM, and second, to give the reader a taste of the ambivalent nature of this
research topic. Hence, the narratives can be viewed as an attempt to represent, through the
characters of ‘Emma’ and ‘Amos’, a set of events, ambiances, feelings and a particular type
of phenomenon (ibid.), and they can be understood as “a form of analysis and reporting of
the research data” (ibid., 145). Bold (2012) suggests that using representative constructions
is justified in situations “where the researcher seeks to make sense of diverse realistic data
through analysing the parts and then synthesizing them into a realistic framework – a
narrative that is readable and meaningful – in preparation for further analysis” (p. 146).
2.6 Ethical considerations
As a site of inquiry, classroom life is complex. As socially constructed, continuously
negotiated and shaped by many factors, the understanding of the issues and processes that
define it, requires the understanding of what is relevant in this particular context (Bresler
1996). The presence of subjectivity in ethnography should always be acknowledged, explored
and negotiated. In the absence of causal explanations or predictions, the interpretations are
constructed and relative. The same activities may be interpreted differently by different
participants depending on their ways of relating to the phenomenon under inquiry (ibid.).
Hence, with no single or solid interpretation or view at hand, a researcher is faced with
a question of whose view or voice to attend to: The researcher’s view or the participant’s?
If it is the participant’s view, then, which participant? The research design, data collection
and finally the form and the voice of the research report are shaped by these decisions
(Bresler 1996, 136).
Acting in a dual role as a practitioner-researcher with the idea in mind that “truth and
certainty are unstable” (Bold 2012, 13), required from my part even more awareness of my
own positions, motives, hopes and even fears. On one hand, it would not even be possible
to entirely distance oneself from one role or the other. On the other hand, just because of
the dual role, it could be claimed that I know the context from the inside out and already
have a solid pre-understanding of the phenomenon under study. In that way, as Bresler
(1996, 138) also writes, subjectivity can be seen both as an advantage and a challenge, and
something that needs to be recognized, negotiated and re-negotiated.
61
Questions of power are always present when conducting an inquiry. Sensitivity and
responsibility are self-evidently required from the researcher’s part, but the situation
is particularly delicate when the participants are children (Kvale & Brinkmann 2009).
Although the students participating in the study were building knowledge along with
me, by reflecting on their own learning in the stimulated recall interviews, I was fully
aware that I held all the power. I was the one who designed the learning environments,
selected the topics and facilitated the activities in the BoM course. Moreover, I was the
one to ask the questions, interpret the findings and write the research report. As Tolonen
and Palmu (2007) explain, these power relations and related ethical questions need to be
critically considered all along the research process; such is the case with this inquiry.
Acting in a dual role as the practitioner of the BoM classroom and a researcher examining
that particular practice, I was required to constantly navigate and re-navigate my own
responsibilities and ethical considerations.
62
3 The case of BoM
This chapter (3) and Chapters 4 and 5 explore the social engagements taking place in
a nine-year old children’s music-learning in a group context in a Finnish music-school
classroom, following the ‘Basics of Music’ (BoM) course. This chapter outlines the ‘Basic
of Music’ course and presents the classroom social interactions in a chronological order,
beginning with phase one of the research project (everybody working together), followed
by phase two (working in divided groups of girls and boys). The chapter articulates the
interactions and the processes of negotiation from the teacher perspective and seeks to
give the reader an overview of the classroom activities during the time of data collection.
Moments during these interactions that were particularly illuminating are explored in
more detail in Chapters four 4 and five 5, addressing both the challenges and the potentials
for democratic learning when participating in BoM.
Table 3 serves as an opening for this chapter to illustrate the case of BoM, the contents and
the classroom activities, during the time of data collection.
Table 3: Contents of the lessons and classroom activities
Time of
a data
collection
Beginning
of Phase 1:
Working
in co-ed
setting
Lesson
1
Contents of the lessons
Classroom activities
What is BoM? Getting to
know each other. About
communicating in and
through music: listening,
reacting and interacting.
Working with a beat
and rhythmic patterns.
Introducing the rhythmic
syllables of quarter note
and eighth note. Identifying
rhythmic patterns.
Introducing everybody in the
class. Warm-up games to support
interaction and collaboration
among the students. Body
percussion: working with a
beat and rhythmic patterns
simultaneously. Learning the
rhythmic syllables of quarter note
and eighth note and identifying
some rhythmic patterns by
listening. Writing some of them
on a black board.
63
Time of
a data
collection
64
Lesson
Contents of the lessons
Classroom activities
2
Continuing with the beat
and rhythmic patterns.
Introducing rhythmic
notation. Rhythmic
dictation.
Starting with a warm-up game
introduced by a student. Body
percussion: working with the
beat and rhythmic patterns.
Introducing rhythmic notation
and writing down some of the
patterns worked on earlier.
Conducting a rhythmic dictation.
3
Students’ own rhythmic
inventions and creating of a
collaborative percussion
piece. Reading and writing
skills for rhythmic patterns.
Starting with a warm-up
game. Inventing students’ own
rhythmic patterns by using
body percussion. Working on a
collaborative percussion piece
based on students’ own inventions
using dish brushes and foam mats
as instruments. Introducing how
to notate students’ own rhythmic
patterns and exercising reading
the patterns.
4
G-clef, pitches, major
scale and the basic rules
of melodic notation.
Starting with a warm-up game.
Singing a familiar song with body
percussion and musical
movement. Discussing the
concepts of G-clef, pitches and
major scale. Getting familiar with
the basic rules of melodic
notation. Notating the rhythm and
the melody of the familiar song
from the beginning of the lesson.
5
The concepts of the major
scale and the key system.
Melodic improvisation
using a pentatonic scale.
Working with the students’ own
instruments: familiarization with
major scales and the key system
by playing together. The students
invent melodic ostinati by using
pentatonic scale on a tonicdominant bass line. The invented
ostinati are sung and notated
together.
Time of
a data
collection
End of
Phase 1
Lesson
Contents of the lessons
Classroom activities
6
Continuing the familiarization
with the pitch names and
introducing the octave ranges.
Introducing students’ own
instruments and discussing
their ranges. An introduction
to an upcoming composing
project:collaborative
instrumental improvisation.
Exercising the identifying
and marking of the staff
pitches in different octave
ranges.
Getting familiar with the octave
ranges: students explore the octave
ranges with their own instruments
and introduce their instruments
to the others. The ranges of each
instrument are explored and
discussed. An introduction to an
upcoming composing project:
collaborative instrumental
improvisation by imitating the
characteristics of animals selected
by the students. Exercises from the
textbook: identifying and notating
the staff pitches in different octave
ranges.
7
Melodic dictation. Starting
with the collaborative
composing project: a group
drama assignment conducted
with students in two small
groups. Performing the
completed composition
assignments for the other
group.
Writing a melodic dictation.
Starting the collaborative
composing project with a drama
group assignment: creating a story
based on a scene with an animal
selected by the students and using
mime. The stories of a penguin
and a rabbit are performed and
the happenings; characteristics;
and the structure of each story are
discussed together.
8
Understanding rhythmic
notation: working on time
values; bars; time signatures;
and other rhythmic notation
features. Composing project:
an instrumental group
improvisation of a penguin as
a topic. Crafting alternative,
instant compositions of the
invented materials by playing
a conductor-game.
Rhythmic reading exercises by
clapping and using rhythmic
syllables. Composing project:
memorizing the story of the
penguins from the previous week
and discussing the characteristics
of a penguin, and how these
characteristics could be imitated
musically. A collaborative
instrumental group improvisation
of a penguin. The material invented
in a group improvisation operates
as musical building blocks in
crafting instant compositions. A
conductor-game: one student at a
time acts as a conductor, selecting
or muting the ostinati in a way that
creates a new, original version of
the composition.
65
Time of
a data
collection
Beginning
of Phase 2:
Working
in singlegender
settings
66
Lesson
Contents of the lessons
Classroom activities
9
Chromatic symbols.
Composing project:
an instrumental
improvisation with a
rabbit as a topic.
Studying chromatic symbols first
with own instruments and then
by exercises from the textbook.
Composing project: musically
experimenting with a rabbit as a
topic in the same manner as with
the penguin in the previous week.
10
Dotted time values in
reading, writing and making
music. Continuing with the
composing project.
Studying dotted time values by
doing body percussion, writing
down ostinati; reading exercises
and conducting a rhythmic
dictation. Composing project:
both groups select a penguin as
their topic.
11
The concepts of keys,
major scales and tonal
degrees. Continuing the
composing project.
Studying keys, major scales and
tonal degrees by singing, playing
instruments and completing
exercises in the textbook.
Continuing with the composing
project collaborating as an
instrumental group.
12
Musical intervals.
Continuing the composing
project.
Introducing musical intervals
by singing, playing instruments
and by doing exercises from
the textbook. Continuing the
composing project: penguins’
wobbly walking, sliding on the ice
and the jump to the water.
13
Minor scales and related
keys. Continuing the
composing project.
Rehearsing for the
upcoming written
summary test.
Studying minor scales and the
related keys by singing and
playing instruments. Continuing
the composing project: working
on the endings and rehearsing
the performances for the preChristmas party. Rehearsing for
the upcoming written summary
test.
14
A small written summary
test about the contents of
the BoM course studied in
the all semester.
The lesson only involves a small
written summary test about the
contents discussed in the fall
semester.
Time of
a data
collection
End of the
project
Lesson
Contents of the lessons
Classroom activities
Pre-Christmas party with
two other groups.
Pre-Christmas potluck party with
some games and singing Christmas
carols. Students perform the
unfinished compositions for the
other groups as they are at the
moment. The students guess each
other’s topics and discuss the
stories behind the compositions.
15
Introducing triads and scale
degrees. Major and minor
chords. Going to concert:
an animation with two livepianos in the music school’s
concert hall.
Studying triads and scale degrees
by singing and completing some
exercises from the textbook. The
lesson is shorter because of going
to a concert: an animation with two
live-pianos in the music school’s
concert hall.
16
Introducing absolute chord
symbols. The functions
of tonic, subdominant
and dominant. Playing an
arrangement together in
order to demonstrate chord
progressions. Finishing the
composing project.
Continuing with the concepts
of triads and scale degrees and
introducing absolute chord
symbols. Discussing the functions
of tonic, subdominant and
dominant. The students participate
in working on an arrangement
of a song that was sung in
the beginning of the lesson to
demonstrate the use of chords.
The arrangement is then played
together. Finishing the composing
project.
67
As explained in Chapter 1.1, this BoM classroom experimented with creative and
hands-on approaches and a workshop-type of setting in order to support interactions and
collaborative learning among the students. As the table above shows (and is also discussed
Chapter 1.1), the classroom activities involved, among other things, singing, musical
movement, body percussion, drama, playing instruments, improvisation and composing,
thus, calling for active participation from everyone. Hence, the pedagogical aim was to
encourage the students to explore, discuss and experiment with music, and to negotiate
meanings collectively. This semi-formal, workshop-type of learning environment may
have differed from a conventional school classroom environment in which the students
as third-graders had already been socialized. Hence, participating in BoM also called for
negotiations about new classroom practices.
3.1 Getting started
Wenger (1998/2003) has written that one cannot design learning itself, but rather the
environment within which learning may take place. A sense of community is something
that can grow over time, but it depends on everyone involved (ibid.). Therefore, setting up
conditions in which every student can equally participate and practice agency is one of my
core responsibilities as a teacher. Classroom terms are usually negotiated over and over
again, but are particularly present when starting with a new group of students. This was
the case for this particular group of students in this particular classroom.
The first phase of the project began with the first lesson of the BoM course. The class
consisted of seven girls and seven boys, with two more boys joining the class from the
second lesson onwards. First, we discussed the BoM course aims. I asked if the children
had an idea about what would they be doing in the class. What was it going to deal with?
And I explained why participating in the course would be useful when learning how to
play an instrument or to make music. After that, everybody introduced himself or herself
by telling their names, instruments they were playing, how long they had been playing and
who their instrumental teachers were. Without going into any details, I told the children
that, in the first-half of the semester, we would be working as a whole group and, in the
second-half, divided into two groups.
In order to learn everybody’s names, we first played a rhythmic name-game. I then
introduced a warm-up game, which was about making contacts and about making and
accepting proposals. After playing for a while we did one more clapping game, which
was focusing on listening, reacting and performing musical gestures simultaneously.
The games aimed at easing the excitement and building a joyful and safe atmosphere in
68
which everybody would feel comfortable to engage in the activities. During the games,
we discussed some of the core features of communicating in and through music – namely
listening, reacting and interacting. These features also represented the kind of learning
culture that I was hoping to build with the BoM classroom students. In my opinion as a
teacher, the students were working well together.
After finishing the warm-up games, the rest of the lesson was used to collectively work
on a beat and with rhythmic patterns in different ways. At the end of the lesson, one of
the boys suggested a rhythmic game that he knew and we decided to start the next lesson
with it. Consequently, the whole first lesson focused on getting to know each other, and
on supporting social interaction and collaboration among the children. After the lesson, I
wrote to my teacher’s reflection diary:
09-08-26
The first lesson this went quite well, though some of the boys could not concentrate
throughout the whole lesson. I tried to softly suggest slowing
down a bit to one of the boys after the lesson.
In the second lesson, two more boys joined into the group, so the group then consisted
of seven girls and nine boys. At the beginning of the lesson, I asked the student, who in the
first lesson suggested a game he knew, if he now could introduce it to the rest of the class.
Everybody seemed to like the game and we played it for quite a long time.
During the second half of the lesson, we continued with the previous week’s theme of
the beat and rhythmic patterns by using body percussion and a familiar song. Although
the atmosphere appeared to be nice, I repeatedly had to ask some of the boys to settle
down and focus on the shared activities. After the lesson, I privately had a talk with
these boys about the social rules in the classroom. We made a deal about maintaining a
somewhat more peaceful tone of voice and behaviours from then on.
3.2 When the challenges begin
The next lesson was centred on children’s own rhythmic inventions, aiming at collectively
creating a rhythmic piece made by the students, and on reading and writing skills of
rhythmic patterns. Everybody actively participated in a warm-up game, but soon after
the boys from the previous week started to ignore my instructions and quite intensively
disrupted the joint activities. Instead of joining the rest of the group, they repeatedly
wandered around the classroom or were lying on the floor, and chatting with each other.
69
This of course complicated the participation of everyone and the rest of the group had to
repeatedly wait when I had to calm down their behaviour.
In the middle of the lesson, however, there was an episode during which the students
cooperated remarkably actively. They had been inventing their own rhythmic patterns by
using body percussion and were now teaching them to the others. They evidently enjoyed
demonstrating their own patterns and had come up with imaginative body-percussion
ideas. The next step was to use those patterns to build a collaborative percussion piece
by using dish brushes and foam mats for their instrumentation. The moment was gone,
though; some of the boys got wrapped up in sword fighting with the dish brushes and did
not participate in the group activity. I had to cut out the task and now openly have the same
conversation as the week before about the appropriate social practices that I expected in
the BoM classroom – practices that would allow everyone in the classroom to equally
participate in and contribute to the shared enterprises. Like a week earlier, we again made
a deal about calmer behaviour.
Equality in a music classroom can be understood as an equal opportunity or equal
access to educational and musical resources; as Gould (2007) frames it, classroom
equality is equal access to power in interactions. Teachers manifest power through their
attitudes, the ways that they conduct lessons, and through assessments. Students’ power
manifestations can be seen in their behaviour and in their attitudes towards other students
and teachers (see hooks 1994; Freire 2005). Although this probably was not their deliberate
intention, the restless boys’ behaviour caused an issue with power in the BoM classroom.
After the lesson I wrote in my diary:
09-09-09
This did not work out. Some of the boys were just running around... The girls
and couple of the boys tried to participate as actively as they could. I am not happy about
cutting down the group task.
By ignoring the shared activities, these particular students made everybody else wait
for the activities to continue. As a result, the group’s participation was compromised
and the equality of interaction was openly questioned. Consequently, the lesson showed,
despite the promising events in each lesson so far, that negotiating a democratic learning
environment would require sensibility and resilience in this particular BoM classroom.
The theme of the fourth lesson was to introduce pitches, major scales, G-clef and the
basic rules of using melodic notation. All of the students had been playing an instrument
for at least a year, some even three to four years, so this was not actually new for them. To
70
my surprise throughout the lesson, the negotiation about classroom social rules continued
to be an issue with the same students. In particular, the transitions from one activity to
the next took a really long time. Twice, I tried to solve the situation by rearranging the
seats of the students who seemed to be having difficulties concentrating on the activities.
Despite the on-going negotiations about creating collaborative practices and a supportive
learning environment, these particular students persisted in their disruptive behaviours.
I was puzzled with the situation. Was it about the structure of the lessons, about lack of
social skills – from my or their part – or just about lack of interest? Regardless, I did not
seem to be able to catch their attention and motivate them to collaborate with the rest of
the group.
As discussed earlier in Chapter 1.2, according to Wenger, identities are produced
through the practices in which we engage, but just as importantly, they are also produced
through practices in which we do not (Wenger 1998/2003, 164). Hence, what we are not
can also play a significant part in how we define ourselves. This notion may give new
perspectives in viewing social interactions in the BoM classroom. When falling into
gendered border work (Thorne 1993; Bredesen 2004; Paechter, 2007; Connell 2009; Berg
2010), the girls and the boys seemed to intentionally produce identities in juxtaposition to
one another. In addition to the possible reasons considered above, there is room to suggest
another angle to look at this lack of mutual engagement among some of the boys. Namely,
since all the girls seemed to adopt a uniform student role by following the coursework
and participating in classroom activities, when driven by gendered border work, some of
the boys may have adopted a shared understanding of group masculinity that would allow
them, for whatever reason, to stand out somehow differently.
For the next lesson, the students were asked to bring their own instruments with them.
The aim of the lesson was to work on major scales, key system, reading and writing of
music by using a staff, and on melodic invention. The lesson did not bring any notable
change to the on-going negotiation of social practices in the classroom. As earlier, there
were some moments of mutuality, but for the most part, the same students more or less
continued to dominate the classroom interactions by seeking attention from the others and
creating disorder in the joint activities.
Launching the basic rules of working as an instrumental group, such as not talking
when playing and vice versa, listening to the others and following the instructions was
a particular effort. Keeping the music making running was at times quite demanding
but I absolutely did not want to cut off the playing as I had done two weeks earlier. I did,
however, have to repeatedly remind some students of the basic rules.
71
A week later, the lesson focused, among other things, on becoming familiar with the
concept of octave ranges. This was done by working with the students’ own instruments.
We also collectively figured out each instrument’s range, and the students introduced their
instruments to the rest of the group. The concept of octave ranges was then integrated
with an instrumental improvisation of imitating three animals picked by the students. The
group came up with the improvisations of a dinosaur, a cat and a bee. After making music,
the rest of the lesson was used to work collaboratively with the textbooks, completing
exercises in identifying and notating the staff pitches in different octave ranges. In my
diary I wrote:
09-09-30
Today some of the students seemed to be really tired and the lesson was extremely restless.
I really had to put a lot of effort in keeping up the discipline, and still, at times, the
concentration of some students was extremely poor. I even had to ask one of the boys to step
aside from playing for a while. He was really bothering the other students too much. Also,
the transitions took a really long time again. I had to give two speeches about behavioural
rules during the lessons. There were some nice moments as well, though. When imitating
the animals, the children came up with some really nice ideas; good concentration from
the whole group in soft, sneaking cat steps. The piano students came up with nice purring
and the string players with great meowing. Finally, after the second reprimanding speech,
the end of the lesson was actually quite peaceful when working with the textbooks. I felt
sorry for those students who had to listen to my nagging, even though all they had been
doing was just sitting and waiting quietly.... I think we are dealing with some power issues
here.
Socially, the BoM classroom did not seem to make much progress. The span of
concentration was surprisingly short, and the same students kept on dominating the
classroom interactions, in a way that complicated the participation of others. Moreover,
as a practitioner, I felt that this probably was the most challenging class with which I
had worked, and felt both frustrated and responsible. My aim, as a teacher, had been to
facilitate a democratic learning environment in which every student could explore and
experiment with music collaboratively. However, the prevailing situation did not quite
match with that. Group cooperation evidently suffered from lack of mutuality. While I
was considering my own solutions, some of the students had also started to invent their
own.
72
3.3 Looking for ‘coping strategies’
In terms of social interaction, lesson seven started well. The students were focused
and concentrated on checking the homework, which was followed by a small melodic
dictation. After finishing the dictation, the class was divided in half, each group working
in a different classroom. The assignment was, as a group, to pick an animal for a topic,
explore its characteristic features and create a small story or performance by using mime.
The performance should also have a clear structure: a beginning, middle and an end. The
aim was to be able to use it later as a starting point for a collaborative composing project.
Both groups struggled quite a lot with the team work. There seemed to be two ‘fronts’,
girls’ and boys’, each with difficulties in accepting the other’s ideas. Eventually, both
groups needed a teacher’s help to finish the task. For the final part of the lesson, the stories,
one about the penguins and one about the rabbits, were performed for the other group, and
the characteristics, events and structures were collectively discussed.
In these particular group work situations it seemed obvious that the individual
preferences and choices of the students were overdriven by gendered border work (Thorne
1993; Bredesen 2004; Paechter 2006; Connell 2009; Berg 2010). Especially for the boys,
maintaining the polarization seemed to be far more important than finishing the task. I
only later found out that the girls had made a bet with the boys before the lesson started.
The bet was about whether the boys were able to behave during the lesson or not. When
working on the drama assignment, both groups created a ‘coping strategy’, attempting to
talk the other group into cooperation by threatening that the other group would loose the
bet.
The eighth and the final lesson of Phase 1 began with working on rhythmic notation,
time values, bars and time signatures. This was done collectively by reading and clapping
exercises, and doing written textbook exercises. The beginning of the lesson did not bring
much that was new to the social dynamics of the BoM classroom interactions. All the girls
and a couple of boys were trying to focus on the tasks while some of the boys showed only
selected interests in the shared activities. The transitions from one activity to the next took
a really long time.
The second half of the lesson was used to start the music composition assignment
based on the students’ invented stories from the previous week. The group chose to work
with the penguin story and immediately had many ideas to elaborate on the topic: wobbly
walking; being clumsy on the ground, yet skilful swimmers in the water; sliding sounds
on the ice; and so on. The group came up with a colourful instrumental improvisation,
in which each student brought something characteristic to the penguins. Then, each
73
student’s invented material was used as a musical building block in order to craft
alternative miniature compositions. One of the students always stood in the middle of
the circle of players as a conductor, selecting or muting the material for her/his version of
the composition. The students were clearly excited about the conductor-game, and it was
carried on uninterrupted until the end of the lesson. I reflected in my diary:
09-10-21
Quite demanding start for a lesson that luckily ended nicely. You never know what to
expect. The students really seemed to enjoy the last part, working on their composition.
Next week, we divide the students into two groups. Did we get anywhere here socially? It
will be really interesting to see what is going to happen.
The ninth lesson of the course signalled the beginning of the project’s second phase, in
which students were divided by gender into two groups: one group of girls and one group
of boys. The lessons were conducted one after another. In the beginning part of the lesson,
we focused on the chromatic symbols, which the students first explored and studied with
own instruments; then, the students did exercises from the textbook. Throughout the
lesson, the girls were remarkably focused in their work. In contrast, the boys’ participation
suffered from constant interruptions by certain group members. So, once again, I opened
a conversation about social behaviour in the BoM classroom. In the class discussion, some
of the boys spoke up, complaining that the constant disturbances made it difficult for them
to concentrate during the lessons. We agreed that each and everyone should be responsible
for maintaining a cosy learning environment in the class.
In the composition assignment, the students explored with their instruments the
character of a rabbit in the same manner as the previous week with the penguin character.
Although particularly the girls came up with many ideas for both characters, both of the
groups decided to stick with the penguin as their topic for a group composition. In the
boys’ group, focusing on playing was difficult at times. After the lesson, I wrote in my
diary:
09-10-28
Amazing, what a huge difference between these two groups! It almost felt as if the girls
would have been absorbing information... the atmosphere was really focused. Nothing new
under the sun with some of the boys, though. Talking with them does not seem to help at
all. We have the same conversation in every lesson. Today, though, the students called for
a more peaceful atmosphere. Maybe this is the start of something new.
74
3.4 Promising glimpses
Lesson ten started with activities that focused on rhythm. The new task was to learn to
read, write and play dotted-time values. To this end, two third of the lesson was dedicated
to doing body percussion, ostinati notation, reading exercises and rhythmic dictation. The
last fifteen minutes was comprised of collectively continuing the composition assignment.
In the both groups, the students tried to come up with various ways with their instruments
of penguin wobbly walking and ice sliding.
Just like the previous week, the girls’ group actively participated in all the shared
activities and were focused. Having absolutely no interferences felt almost surreal.
Looking from a teacher’s perspective, the atmosphere was relaxed and cosy.
With the boys, I had decided in advance to maintain a calm atmosphere; early in the
lesson, the boys made attempts to compromise the peace, but I reminded them about the
deal we had already made a number of times. However, the attention span was really
short and I had to repeatedly ask them to focus on the activities. Despite the reprimands,
I paid attention to my own tone of voice, trying to deliver my message in a determined
yet friendly manner. When sitting together doing some sight reading exercises, one of the
boys, Matt, suddenly turned to me and asked: “Which do you like better, girls or boys?” I
said that I liked both equally. “I want you to consider us as stupid”, the second boy, Jack,
continued. His comment was quite unexpected, and I asked him, why would he want that?
He just answered “because”. This led us to a conversation about their family members who,
in their mind, did hold them as stupid. I said that I was sure that no one really believed this.
After nine weeks, of at times quite intense negotiation about what behaviours were
or were not acceptable in the lessons, the conversations made me reconsider again the
social dynamics in the BoM classroom. Again, what were the available identities? To
me, the striking trait of adopting highly stereotypical gendered learner identities (Gordon
2006a) signalled possible links between localized understandings of group masculinity
and group femininity in the BoM classroom (Paechter 2006) and gendered border work
(Thorne 1993; Bredesen 2004; Paechter 2006; Connell 2009; Berg 2010).
Despite some social ups and downs during the lesson, positive things happened as
well. Some time later, when conducting rhythmic dictation, the whole group was suddenly,
extremely well focused on the task, and some of the boys cooperated actively, helping
each other complete the assignment. I thought this was very promising. In the last part of
the lesson, when working on the group composition, the students came up with some new
ideas. In my diary I wrote:
75
09-11-11
Some nice moments today! Everybody was actually concentrating during the rhythmic
dictation. Emil, Amos and Max really cooperated nicely (peer learning!). There were
also some nice ideas with the composition. Jack’s comment, that boys are expected to be
‘stupid’, however, came out of the blue. I wonder what he really wanted to say? Did he really
mean this? For the first time I saw vulnerability in his actions.
The eleventh lesson plan introduced the concept of keys, major scales and tonal
degrees. We studied them by listening, singing, playing instruments and doing textbook
exercises. The boys’ lesson was a roller coaster. At times, they participated quite actively,
but their concentration only lasted for a short while. The good periods were followed
by poor ones. What was new, though, was that they seemed to be more conscious about
their own behaviour and even commented when things started to ‘go under’. During
the composition assignment, however, the positive intensity of the previous week was
gone. The boys did not get any further with their group composition and suffered even to
remember the beginning of it from their work the week before.
Instead, the girls moved to the next passage of in their story, in which the penguins are
swimming and fishing in the sea. Although the girls were mostly working in a focused
manner and achieved a lot during the lesson, something peculiar happened. Two girls
sitting next to each other ran into a small conflict about the use of their physical space, and
it took me a while to convince them to stop quarrelling. This was a totally new situation. In
Phase 1 when everybody still was working together, the girls never showed any disruptive
behaviours. It is worth mentioning, however, that I may not have noticed this going on
with the girls before when the boys were keeping me so occupied. Consequently, I have to
admit that as a teacher, the boys behaviour was so challenging, I could not share my time
equally then between my students. In my diary I wrote:
09-11-18
In the boys’ group I had to bring up the question about their motivation to compose. Five
out of eight students said they want to continue with the project. Once again we made a
deal about better concentration in the future. Unlike the boys, the girls moved on to the
next passage of their project. Interestingly, there was a small quarrel between Rebecka
and Julia who normally are good friends. It seems that the girls are starting to show their
feelings.
In the beginning of lesson twelve, I asked the boys if they were now ready for
composing. This time, the group worked really focused with the project. They came up
with many ideas and tried different solutions. Although their concentration sometimes
76
slipped, they managed to finish the first section of their story and even moved on to the
next passage: the penguins in the water. They even practiced for a long time, polishing a
section that illustrated penguins’ jumping into the water.
With the girls’ group, we started the class by repeating the major scale from the
previous week and then moved to introducing learning intervals. This was carried out by
singing and playing on the instruments and then doing some textbook exercises, learning
how to identify and build intervals. The last part of the lesson was used to work on the
second passage of their composition. The girls’ cooperation appeared to be easy again,
and they had time to rehearse their piece from the beginning to the end of the second
passage a couple of times.
Working the lessons in an the opposite reverse order from the girls, the boys finished
the lesson by studying the intervals. At this point, focusing on learning was difficult for
some of the boys; however, it was really nice to be able to give them positive feedback after
a relatively good lesson.
Lesson thirteen was centred on the minor scales and the concept of related keys. Part
of the lesson was also used to rehearse for the upcoming test the following week. In the
boys’ group, the lesson was dynamically like some of the previous ones, including some
quite promising and some quite challenging moments. In the beginning of the lesson,
the students actively participated, but then suddenly they lost focus. Some of the boys
protested quite intensely against the noise in the classroom, saying that it really was
frustrating to repeatedly wait for the situation to calm down and to get going with the
shared activities. As reported earlier, this was not the first time that some of the boys
called for more a peaceful classroom environment. For example, Emil had been reacting
to the situation since the beginning of the course. Now, however, he had a group of allies.
Despite ‘unpredictability’ being the best word to describe the interaction among the
boys so far, one of the greatest moments of cooperation was yet to come. The last part
of the lesson was dedicated to the composing project. Working started disorderly, and
I pointed this out to the students. Then suddenly, one of the students, Filip, got a great
idea about the passage the students tried to find a creative realisation. His enthusiasm
immediately caught on to the others, and suddenly, the group cooperated like never before.
Filip seemed to be totally in charge and easily unified the others. At this moment, I only
needed to step back and let them finish composing the section. I wrote to my diary:
77
09-12-02
This week, some of the students were openly strained drained by the fuss caused by some
boys, and repeatedly brought it up. Does this mean that the boys are now starting to
negotiate the rules between themselves? Great episode in the end of the lesson! Filip’s
great idea inspired everybody. The best cooperation ever so far.
The lesson with the girls was again quite harmonious. They were, however, worried
about the up-coming test, so, in addition to learning the task of the week, we spent a lot of
time rehearsing for the summary test. Time management never seemed to be a problem
for the girls. So, as in previous lessons, they still had some time remaining, and this time,
they planned the ending for their composition.
The next two weeks prior to Christmas break, were dedicated to the summary test
and a pre-Christmas potluck party with some games and Christmas carol singing. The
both groups performed their unfinished compositions, as they were at the moment. This
allowed us to jointly discuss how the same story could be given many kinds of musical
realisations.
Following Christmas break, the fifteenth lesson focused on harmony, introducing
triads and scale degrees. The class became familiar with chords and the idea of using the
degrees by singing, and also discussed whether the chords sounded like major or minor
chords. The lesson was shorter than normal because the students were going to see a
performance in the music school concert hall of an animation accompanied by two pianos.
Both groups focused well throughout this lesson.
The sixteenth lesson signalled the end of Phase 2 of the research project. This lesson
continued with the topic of the previous lesson. Further, the chords were named by using
chord symbols. For the pianists and the guitarists, this notation was already somewhat
familiar from their instrumental lessons. We also discussed the functions of tonic,
subdominant and dominant. I demonstrated the functions by playing together with the
students an arrangement of a song that had been learned earlier in the lesson. Socially,
this lesson was also quite a success in both groups. The students were focused and the
atmosphere was mostly quite cosy. I wrote in my diary:
10-01-20
This was the last lesson of the research project. For the first time a second good lessons in
a row – unprecedented for the boys! Although, the “wild” boys were not around, hopefully
this is a new beginning.
78
3.5 Looking back from a teacher’s perspective
Looking back, the interaction in the BoM classroom makes it necessary to rethink my own
understandings of the social situations and the choices I, as a practitioner, made during
my data collection. As said above, my hope, as a teacher, was to facilitate a learning
environment that would promote hands-on explorations with music in workshop-type
settings. I also aimed to facilitate explorations that would also raise questions that do
not necessary have clear-cut ‘right or wrong’ answers, but would encourage the students
to embrace ambiguity and make their own musical choices, both individually and as a
community. With this approach, my educational aim was to promote more student-led
practices in the BoM classroom. As one who does not necessarily have all the answers but
is willing to help the students to find them, I saw myself as the more experienced agent,
engaging in mutual learning processes with the students.
Traditionally, teachers have been preferably perceived as neutral, distant and almost
genderless professionals (Rekola & Vuorikoski 2006). Society has stereotyped teachers
as authorities who keep their own emotions in the background, do not make mistakes,
and do not reveal their ignorance. This stereotype has emphasized the teacher’s role to
be in mastering the subject contents. Constructing a reflective and democratic learning
environment requires the reassessment of this out-dated teacher role. This reassessment
calls for the teacher to come out from behind the role of a neutral expert (ibid., 24). This
revised identity means being open to new solutions in changing situations, and the ability
to take risks and to tolerate uncertainties (e.g. Dewey 1999/29; Westerlund & Juntunen
2013). As relevant to this study, this kind of reflexive thinking and inquiry originates
from a need to gain new understandings in more or less problematic situations (Dewey
1997/1910; Westerlund & Juntunen 2013). Reflecting on the social phenomenon that was
problematic in my own classroom led me to experiment with new kinds of solutions, and
think of teaching not as something that is fixed or settled, but rather a life-long learning
process (Westerlund & Juntunen 2013). This flexible, forward-thinking attitude can also
be encouraged in students, and practiced in the course of shared activities; in that way,
teachers can further promote autonomy and transformation in learning.
When trying to conceptualize what was going on socially in the BoM classroom, I
have to take into account that my own personality; style as a teacher; and even my gender
are not inconsequential, but play a part in the whole. Even though a large body of recent
literature shows that matching gender does not positively impact boys’ motivations or
achievements (Skelton & Francis 2009, 119), understanding gender as performative and
as constructed in lived social relations means that it is negotiated in everyday classroom
interactions between the participants. Thus, it is also negotiated between the teacher and
79
the students. Even though I was trying to be aware of my own attitudes and the messages
that I was sending to the students – for instance, by never calling them ‘girls’ or ‘boys’
– I cannot avoid recognizing the possibility that some of these messages – comments,
attitudes or gestures – may have been gendered, and were perhaps even inevitably so.
In a participation metaphor, people must learn the norms, values and practices of
each new community they enter (Yamakawa, Forman & Ansell 2005, 179). Since the
BoM classroom may have differed from a regular school classroom in terms of dialogical
settings and classroom practices typical for creative processes. Therefore, it is only natural
that negotiating these new practices took some time, and was dependent on effective
communication between all the participants. It cannot be overlooked, however, that in
this study, I was the one who designed the BoM course, selected the practices and defined
the social norms in this particular classroom. In other words, I held a notable amount
of power. Hence, teaching is permeated by value statements (hooks 1994; Florence
1998). Regarding the values and aims of education, with power always comes ethical
responsibility. In Freirean thinking, music education is not neutral and needs to recognize
students’ individual needs, and specific contextual features (Juntunen & Westerlund 2013).
Such dialogue between the teacher and students rests on cooperation, which can only
thrive in a democratic learning environment (Freire 1970). Therefore, paying attention
to the social life of a classroom and its built-relations is vital. Just as one cannot design
the actual learning and transformation, pursuing a democratic learning environment is a
process, which has an outcome that depends on everybody involved.
Teaching is living in the moment. This makes it simultaneously so rewarding and also
demanding. Conducting lessons means constantly making choices – choices about the
contents, practices and social norms. As this study also shows, a teacher’s best efforts
do not always lead to the best outcomes. Ferm (2006) suggests that a teacher needs
openness and awareness to be able to react to sudden changes and, for example, to the
students’ initiatives. Indeed, as teachers, we often tend to assume that creative practices
always produce positive learning experiences among the students and promote reflexivity
and transformation in learning. However, it is something that can neither be planned in
advance nor taken for granted. In the next two chapters, I discuss in more detail episodes
taken from the lessons during the data collection that present interactions, times of tension,
conflicts, times of cooperation and sharing of learning in the BoM classroom.
80
4 Interaction in the BoM classroom
Chapter 3 outlined the ‘Basics of Music’ course and chronologically presented the social
interactions that took place in the classroom during the data collection period. This chapter
examines the interactions in more detail by focusing on the social events and happenings
that were particularly illuminating when viewing the interrelationships of children’s
gendered negotiations and the construction of musical agency in classroom-based music
learning. In order to answer the main research question: How is gender performed in the
negotiations of the BoM classroom?, I explore students’ social interactions through three
constructed themes: 1) performing modes of participation; 2) holding gendered beliefs
and preconceptions; and 3) shifting between ‘good student’ and ‘rebel student’ identities. I
discuss these themes by observing the classroom discourse, and by comparing Phase One
(co-ed setting) to Phase Two (single-gender settings). I use two sub-questions to support
my analysis: 1) How does gendered border work drive the negotiation of the forming of
memberships in the BoM classroom?; and 2) How does gendered border work drive the
negotiation of the gaining of ownership of meaning in the BoM classroom?
4.1 Modes of participation
During the whole process of conducting this inquiry, the theme that repeatedly caught my
attention was the presence of tensions arising from participation that seemed to regulate
the construction of memberships among the students, and, thus, their access to learning
and agency construction. This study understands ‘agency’ as socially constructed; and
as part of communities, cultural conceptions, norms and relationships; it is determined
expressly by the access to cultural, material and social resources (McNay 2004; see also
Gould 2007) and by our own engagements in social situations. In the BoM classroom
studied here, the social boundaries caused by gendered border work seemed to compromise
or sometimes even restrict (Thorne 1993; Bredesen 2004; Paechter 2006; Connell 2009;
Berg 2010) access to mutual negotiation processes and the shaping of meanings of shared
enterprises (Wenger 1998/2003), creating inequalities among the students.
As the observation data, as well as children’s own reflections later indicate, gendered
border work in the BoM classroom can be traced at least in two ways, by: 1) adopting
gender-based learner identities, and 2) sustaining gendered beliefs and preconceptions.
The former is particularly evident in the differences of the use of student voice, time,
mobility and physical space between the male and female students (Gordon 2006a).
81
All of these differences are critically important when students negotiate memberships
and ownerships of meaning (Wenger 1998/2003); therefore, these differences operate
as vehicles of inclusion and exclusion in pedagogical situations. It is clear that gender
differences do not simply exist, but are made to happen, as Connell (2009, 15) writes.
Consequently, children do not become passively socialized into gendered categories but
indeed practice gendered agency.
In the next section, I discuss how the use of student voice, time, mobility and physical
space created different modes of student participation.
4.1.1 The Use of student voice
In the BoM classroom, the use of student voice seemed to be particularly problematic and
gender differentiated. Although I anticipated these findings, the girls and boys’ different
uses of voice still surprised me. Throughout the study, it became obvious to me that the
use of voice can indeed operate as a powerful legitimator (Arnot 2006) in the classroom
context.
The concept of voice is associated with identity work, such as individual and collective
identities and identification (Arnot 2006, 410; Wenger 1998/2003). At the same time, the
use of voice is connected to negotiability (Wenger 1998/2003). The capability to contribute
to shared meaning-making and to create ownership of meaning depends on access to
practical reflection in classroom discourse, for instance, as Bohman (1999, 140) suggests,
“to give convincing reasons, to back up claims made in speech when challenged by other
speakers”.
In the following episode, students discuss a topic about instrumental improvisation.
Access to this kind of practical reflection is difficult for part of the class because some of
the students continue to dominate the interaction by talking over the others and by playing
their instruments while the others try to lead a conversation. Therefore, it is challenging
for the students who tried to ignore the interruptions and engage in the assigned task.
Ester
A cat.
Anna
Okay, a cat. Hey, tell me what comes to your mind with ‘a cat’? 82
[Talking in the background.] Hey Sweeties, please be quiet okay? Sweeties, quiet now… What comes to your mind? Ester?
Ester
Well, at least cats don’t stomp…
Anna
How do cats move then? Veronika?
Veronika They move quietly and softly…
Anna
Okay, hey… cats kind of tiptoe. They are soft, yeah? What else cats do? [Some boys play their instruments and talk simultaneously.] Hey, what do cats do? [Still talking in the background...] Hey, come on! Please listen now! Only one person at the time… [Talking continues…] Please, stop talking.
Matt
Blah, blah…
Anna
Hey, this cannot work, that everybody talks at the same time. We
have to take turns. That’s what leading a conversation is about. I have the turn now... Okay, a cat. It is soft and it tiptoes. What else? Please, don’t play your instruments yet…
Matt
Well, it traps some mice and chickens…
Anna
Amos? One at the time, please. [To the boys who talk over Amos:] And now it’s Amos’s turn.
Amos
Well, they have sort of… a moustache. [Laughter.]
Anna
What else? Do they make any sounds?
Ester
Well, they whiz… and purr… and meow!
Anna
Okay! Lets try to play a cat. Starts from here… shh, shh… others, be quiet!
Anna
[To Filip:] Well done! Listen up, listen to Filip... [The pianists come up with a nice ‘purring’.] Now we are listening to the violinists. Hey, how would meowing sound with the violins? Could you please try out some meowing? Nice! Thanks! [A lot of noise. Some boys are roaring in the background.]
Although the students came up with some ideas for their improvisation, the situation
remained really noisy and restless throughout the activity. I even had to ask one of the
students to step aside from playing for a while. This episode illustrates the typical quality
of the use of voice in the BoM classroom in Phase One. I had to continually negotiate
about the social rules, and the students seemed to use their voice to acquire social power
and, at times, even to stand as a gatekeeper to children’s participation. Another episode
taken from the same lesson, shows this problem even more clearly.
In the following conversation, five boys marginalized the rest of the group by entirely
excluding them from the classroom conversation.
Anna
Okay, let’s take the textbooks. Please, listen up. Take your books, please. Page 16, page 16, page 16... [A student asks for a pencil.] Yep, I’ll give you a pencil. Does everyone now have the right page? Please, don’t do that, Julius. Come here, please. [I guide Julius to another table. A lot of noise...]
Hey, listen up! Quiet please! Hey, Pete... Well, everybody, as you see, on this 83
page, we have the octave ranges... [Still a lot of noise.] I’ll show you... here, hey listen up now... as you see, here bove it’s explained... please don’t put that over the book... that after these seven... Amos, Sweetie... the series of these seven root notes... c, d... shh, shh, hey...
Matt
He’s kicking me...
Anna
Please, don’t kick... can’t kick anyone... listen up, please...[The situation does not seem to settle down.] Hey, it’s up to you now... hey Sweeties, listen up! You make the choice. Either we end the lesson in time or we continue a bit longer if we have to... if you continue making a fuss, we just can’t finish in time.
Matt
I don’t want us to finish late.
Anna
Well, then...
Matt
Otherwise I’m gonna’ be late for my pizza... for my chip break...
Anna
Hey Sweeties, then you have to be quiet, hey, then you just have to be quiet... hey, now you have to be quiet. Listen, please... Julius. But the lesson...
Anna
Yeah, but we can’t end the lesson before we are finished with this. You just have to be quiet now. Listen up, the series of these seven root notes... [To a student that tries to get up from his seat:] ... please, don’t go anywhere now... are called octave ranges. Max, hey, Max... [Max continues talking.] ... Hey, buddies, Amos, quiet please!
Jack
Amos, the earth is calling... [Laughter.]
After the sixth lesson, I wrote in my diary:
09-09-30
Today, I had decided not to raise my voice, no matter what. Couldn’t keep my promise,
though. Some of the students were just impossible. I told them that I didn’t want to use any
more of our time for dealing with this issue. I was pretty outspoken and showed my feelings.
For the first time as a teacher, I had doubts about being able to cope with some of these
kids. After the lesson, we had a chat with the boys and once again we made a deal about
improving the situation.
In order to establish a picture of the use of student voice in the BoM classroom, I began
my analysis by tracking: the number of conversations; who was using their voice; what the
conversation was about; and whether it was about musical things from the lesson topic or
about other things. Although the rate varied from one lesson to another, the data revealed
that the boys used their voice up to seven times more than the girls did. A notable amount
of the conversations were carried out, as in the episodes above, with me – the teacher,
84
negotiating the classroom social rules with a group of boys, and leaving the girls and about
two boys as bystanders. It is worth noting, however, that, for both the girls and boys, the
rate of the students’ use of voice during lesson-topic conversations remained about the
same. Thus, the boys seemed to express their agency more openly than the girls did.
Table 3: Times of engaging in the conversation during the lesson.
Lesson
Girls’ use of voice
Boys’ use of voice
3
13
91
4
21
117
5
12
85
6
34
83
7
88
183
Total lessons: 5
Total: 168
Total: 559
Lesson Seven included a group assignment that the students’ completed without the
presence of the teacher. Teacher’s absence shows positively in the times of engaging in
conversation, however still clearly for the favours of the boys’ use of voice.
A closer look at the two episodes above brings up another problematic issue that I
have already identified in Chapter Three. Namely, that the on-going discipline problems
called for my constant interference and made it impossible for me to pay attention to the
students equally. Hence, the situation often was far from my visions about of a dialogical
and reflexive learning environment. In her study on third-graders participating in dance
lessons, Eeva Anttila (2003) discusses the different tones and intensities of dialogue in
conflict situations, varying from softness to firmness or even disapproval in the conflicting
situations. She holds that firmness, as such, does not harm the dialogical relationship once
it has been established. In The BoM classroom, however, there was a new community of
learners, and, as the teacher, I had to delicately balance between the different tones of
dialogue from encouraging to scolding.
85
Later, in the stimulated-recall interview session, I was discussing with the boys about
the dialogue in the BoM classroom; Amos reflected:
Well, it was a bit like... like that for example I... I kind of wanted to make the others laugh...
and they just came along. The girls then couldn’t get their good ideas through... they just
couldn’t speak out...
Regarding teaching the disruptive students, Anttila (2003) suggests that restlessness,
energy and excitement do not necessarily compromise dialogue as long as “some individuals’
freedoms do not limit others’ freedoms” (p. 303). However, situations in which restlessness
and noise hinder someone’s right to enjoy, concentrate and learn cannot be considered
dialogical, at least not for everyone (ibid.). Hence, in such situations, restlessness and noise
may become an issue of power, as was evident in my BoM classroom. While looking at
classroom conversations, Fisher (1994) noticed that boys placed in mixed-gender groups
mainly boys conversed with each other, talking over and marginalizing the girls’ ideas by
ignoring or overriding them. Interestingly enough, Amos’s reflections revealed situations
parallel to these findings.
As discussed above in Chapter Two, gender and education scholars (Renold 2001;
Maynard 2002; Gordon 2006a, 2006b; Arnot 2006; Paetcher 2006; Skelton and Francis
2009) widely discuss the ways that girls position themselves and are positioned by others
when entering educational spaces. For example, both Gordon (2006a) and Skelton and
Francis (2010) claim that like a hidden, cultural self-evidence, girls are expected to show
self-control and rational behaviour, whereas boys are allowed more liberties. These roles
seem deeply embedded in our educational culture. Therefore, for a girl to intensely show
agency and purposefully claim an audible space contradicts with the self-control expected
from her (Gordon 2006a, 6-7). Similarly, the girls in the BoM classroom seemed to
experience tensions when engaging in classroom conversations. Therefore, this suggests
that for girls, their access to mutual negotiation and shaping of meanings (Wenger
1998/2003) was at times compromised.
Emma reflected:
Having the boys around, we don’t learn anything, because they are just yelling and being
noisy...
Again, the polarization in the use of student voice between girls and boys caused power
struggles and directed the localized and shared understanding of group femininity and
group masculinity among the children. Gendered border work (Thorne 1993; Bredesen
86
2003; Paehter 2006; Connell 2009; Berg 2010), that is, a sustainment of stereotypical
gendered groupings, seemed to further complicate the processes of negotiation, and the
students acting according to their own, individual identities, thus making it difficult, both
for the girls and for the boys, to primarily express personal views or attitudes. Hence,
negotiating learner identities is not always a reflexive process, but often can be regulated
by stereotypical, gendered habits based on earlier individual experiences and social
gendered expectations (see Ojala et al. 2009, 22; on gendered agency, see McNay 2004).
Although it is generally preferred to implicit generalizations, Emma’s comment may
have signalled feelings of disappointment or even exclusion. Silence as such “can also
provide an enabling space where girls (or boys) can concentrate for example on educational
achievement or on their own fantasies” (Gordon 2006a, 7). Silent girls (or and silent boys,
I would suggest) can be competent decision- makers, who are determined to create space
for achievements (ibid.).
Girls and the use of student voice
In this section, I will discuss, in light of this study, the implications of the use of student
voice when working with divided groups of girls and boys. In Phase One, the girls
encountered difficulties in making their voice audible. At the beginning of Phase Two, a
change in the use of student voice in the girls’ group was immediate and notable. Instantly,
from the first Phase-Two lesson, the girls group actively participated in the classroom
conversation. Furthermore, the quality of the conversations greatly differed from those in
Phase One, when the distractions often led the discussion away from music and the lesson
topic. Rather, in Phase Two, the conversations were clearly focused on music and the girls
showed intensive agency when engaging in the mutual activities.
The following episode is taken from the Lesson Ten. Here, the students were collectively
working on an exercise that dealt with musical time values and adding barlines to a
rhythmic sequence:
Veronika What did ‘C’ mean again?
Anna
Sweeties, now what does C mean? Who remembers? Who could tell Veronika? Ester?
Ester
It means 4/4.
Anna
4/4. Yeah, it means 4/4. Hey, where would you add the first bar line? [Iris is raising her hand.] Iris?
Iris
Like there... here where the small break is...
87
Anna
Well, actually... it comes a bit earlier... [Some other students are raising their hands, too.]
Iris
Or then here... um... or then here...
Lily
It comes here... [Lily shows the place to Iris from her textbook.]
Iris
... or then in front of it...?
Anna
Look, this one [a note] is this long... if you count here to one and half, then it goes: one and, two and, three and, four... so where does the bar line come then?... After this fourth note?
Ada
I got it there! One, two, three, four.
Anna
Right! So it happens that...
Lily
You mean here? [Lily is still a bit confused...]
Anna
Look, I’ll show you... look at my book... [Meanwhile, the students vividly discuss the solution and count aloud together.] Where does the next bar line come then? [Many raised hands.] Ester?
Ester
After the break.
Anna
Yeah, after the quarter rest. The second bar goes like this. [Everybody read aloud the second bar with rhythmic syllables.] How about the third bar? Who could figure it out? Rebecka, would you have an idea?
Rebecka Could it come here? [Rebecka shows her suggestion from the textbook.]
Anna
Not quite yet... Ada?
Ada
Um... could it come here? [Laughing.]
Rebecka I know where it comes!
Anna
Rebecka, where then?
Rebecka It comes here... here...
Anna
Look, you should count to...
Iris
I know, I know...!
Anna
Iris?
Iris
Well, after the first two notes...
Anna
Yes! Exactly!
To me, this episode demonstrates well the quite notable change in the classroom
environment and the learning culture that took place in with the girls’ in the BoM
classroom when moving during Phase Two. The atmosphere appeared to be relaxed and I
did not notice any traces of the tensions and power struggles that often seemed to define
the Phase-One classroom interactions. The above classroom conversation demonstrates
how the girls now cooperated actively and collectively, and contributed to the problem
solving and the shared meaning making (Wenger 1998/2003). Access to participation
appeared to be open to everyone involved. Furthermore, the students treated each other
respectfully and as legitimate members of the BoM classroom.
88
Another example from Lesson Ten also depicts well the interaction and particularly
the quality of the conversation in the girls’ group when engaging in the shared activities
and the negotiation processes. The following episode presents the girls working on their
group composition:
Anna
Hey, how far did we get last time?
Iris
Until the penguins’ jump... Ester starts.
Lily
But I do...
Veronika Ester starts the jump I mean...
Anna
Please remind me, was it the piano that starts the whole thing? [Julia, the pianist, starts playing.]
Veronika Yeah, it does.
Lily
Can I start now?
Anna
You sure can... [Lily, the flutist, plays her own ostinato over the piano comping.] Ada
Anna
...it’s really nice!
Is this the part where they are marching?
Yeah, now they are marching... [Playing continues all time.]
Great, just something like that! How about the others? [The violinists join in one by one...] Um... is this the right key? [I go through my notes...]
Ester
Yeah it is... or I don’t know...
Anna
Hey, did we really play in C major? [Piano comping starts again...] Or could it have been the G major? [The pianist switches immediately to G major.] Hey, hold on...okay? We have to figure out first the right key... could I hear your ostinato, Ester, with the piano, please? [Ester, one of the violinists, plays her ostinato over the piano part.] And then Veronika, how about your part? [Veronika joins in with her violin...]
Ester
This is for sure what I played... [The playing stops...]
Anna
Hey, Julia [the pianist], could you please play your part once again in C major? Okay, Ester and Veronika, could you now join in, please? Please, start together, ...three and, four and... this works! [The flutist joins in. To the third violinist:] How was your part again? [Iris starts to play glissandos...] yeah, right... they are sliding on the ice... [She says tTo the recorder player who is trying to memorize her ostinato:] That’s in a different key, I think... could you please try it starting from g? Yeah, that’s probably better! [One of the violinists is working on her ostinato.] What if you tried it from another string? [I help the student to is try out an another string...] Yeah, that string... look... there you go! [The playing continues in the background while I turn to the last violinist who still is not playing] How about you Rebecka?
89
Rebecka I wasn’t here last time.
Anna
I know, it doesn’t matter at all. You can work on something new now. You can just listen for a little while and then start trying out things... and when you come up with something you like, then just stick with it... and you can always change it later on if you want to... [Rebecka starts to work on her ostinato.] Okay! [After a while Rebecka plays her newly invented ostinato.] Yeah! And Ester, can you join in?
Anna
Hey, buddies... [The playing stops...] How are they going to get to the water, do they slide or do they jump, or what do they do?
Ester
Didn’t they jump? [Memorizing the story...]
Veronika They could slide, too... [String players start to experiment with the ways of sliding to the water...]
Anna
Yeah, something like that [Experimenting continues...] Yeah, why not... Hey, listen how Rebecka slides... [Rebecka plays her sliding.] ...and how do you jump to the water? [Plays the ‘jump’.] Nice!
Lily
Can this one [penguin] join in?
Anna
Sure! Of course! [Everybody is playing...] and then starts the water music... they go swimming and are no longer wiggly but really smooth and great swimmers, right? [The first violinist invents the way to imitate the waves...] Could you all join in, please?
Ada
Can I show how you mine?
Anna
Sure! [Ada plays her waves with the recorder, and the others continue presenting their ‘waterly’ ideas, as well...]
In this second episode, all the girls actively engaged in the negotiation processes when
working on the group composition. The negotiation took place both verbally and through
music-making. For example, Julia, the pianist, hardly took part in the conversation, but
participated actively by playing almost continuously. She was ready all the time, for
example, by quickly reacting to the request of the key change in the piano part and also
helping the rest of the players to memorize their ostinati. As discussed earlier, silence as
such does not necessarily signal exclusion or lack of agency (Gordon 2006a). Additionally,
in Julia’s case, her instrument – the piano, positioned her physically in a slightly different
way compared to the others, who were sitting in a circle facing one another.
Another student who particularly showed agency, was Ester. When many of the students
needed my help to memorize their ostinati in the right key, she was sure about her part all
along and told us so, too. All in all, this episode exemplifies the girls intensely engaging in
the composing project. The girls showed capability to express their own ideas, while still
being sensitive to the views of others, and exploring and considering the possible solutions.
90
Hence, it was apparent that each and every girl shared in the legitimacy to contribute to the
mutual enterprise of composing the penguin story.
In this section, I just have illustrated how in the girls’ group the use and the quality of
the student voice immediately changed when moving in Phase Two. Dividing the student
into gender-based groups had a positive effect for the girls, enhancing their access to
mutual meaning- making and participation.
Boys and the use of student voice
With the boys, the start of Phase Two was challenging. Some of the students repeatedly
caused distractions and we had to have talks about how we are all responsible in building
up a cosy environment for learning to take place, and that we should respect everybody’s
right to concentrate. Despite these reprimands, as the following episode from Lesson
Eleven illustrates, the boys’ group situation remained problematic. Although at times
one definitely could detect some improvement, the concentration and the modes of
participation varied a lot. The lessons were like a roller coaster, the good moments were
always followed by the poor ones.
In the following episode, the boys are becoming familiar with the concept of harmonic
key systems:
Anna
Hey, could anyone tell, what are the keys are? What were they again?
[One of the boys cannot stay still and I am guiding him back to his seat.]
Amos
Well, they are those one-line, two-line…
Anna
Well, actually not… What are the one-line, two-line, and so on? They are not keys but…
Max
Octave ranges.
Anna
Yeah, exactly. They are the octave ranges. But what is a key? [One of the students flings an endpin of a cello…] Hey, Sweetie, where did you get that? Is this from your cello? [I take the endpin away…] Let’s put it here, okay?
Jack
Well… it’s that thing that goes to that thing…
Anna
Yeah, a cello endpin. Hey, guys, you got the keys mixed up… [A lot of noise.] Hey Jack, please be quiet now. Amos got a bit mixed up with the octave ranges and the keys. Octave ranges are the small, one-line, two-line and so on… [It is getting really noisy, and suddenly one of the boys walk to the piano and starts to play a major scale.] Yeah, there you go…
Anna
Okay. You played us a scale in C major. That is one of the keys. What 91
other keys do you know? [The same student plays another scale.] That’s the c minor… okay. Well then. Listen up please, hey… [A lot of noise.] Please don’t do that… where, hey… [It is still really noisy and the same student leaves his seat…] Hey, buddies, now you got have to listen up… please don’t go anywhere now…
Max
To the loo…
Anna
Please not now, in a minute, ok? Not until we have finished discussing this. [Another student leaves his seat.] Jack, please come back. Have you played in some different keys? Please, give to me that pen… and sit down, please. Hey, what other keys are you familiar with? Can you memorize any other keys than C major? Amos?
Amos
Um... D major.
The students continue memorizing the keys with which they are familiar with in a
quite noisy and restless environment:
92
Anna
Hey, please no talking! The turn is here…
Emil
I have played in e minor…
Anna
Okay, in e minor…
Max
I have played in all majors and minors…
Anna
Right, hey listen up… Filip…
Emil
Can we proceed this week a little faster than we did last week?
Anna
Well, it totally depends on you guys… When we played last time played and talked about major scale in C major… [Plays the scale while talking.] we discussed… [It is really noisy and Jonas sings a C major scale along.] Okay, may I please have the word now? Jonas? [Talking goes on.] Hey, may I speak now? There you go… we discussed that the major scale is built following a certain… shhh… pattern so that… hey… [Jonas raises his hand.] Yes, Jonas?
Jonas
Well, just that this lesson now probably goes worse than the last one…
Anna
No, no… this still can go well if you just stop messing up…
Jonas
Yeah…
Anna
Really guys, it really is up to you! Okay?
Jack
Lets fight…
Anna
Yeah, perhaps against acting silly… I’ll finish explaining this now…
Jack
The warrior that fought against acting silly just died…
Anna
Okay, sorry to hear… Hey, the major scale is built from having at times whole-steps between the tones and at times half-steps. The half-steps are… Julius shhh… between the third and fourth note and between the seventh and eighth note…
Jack
Now he died.
Obviously, the boys’ group still suffered from discipline problems that caused power
issues among the students and between the students and the teacher. In the previous lesson,
the unproductive situation was discussed collectively as it had many times before. Since
the group did not seem to make progress in terms of social behaviour, Emil and Jonas
started to make remarks about the learning environment challenges. Emil asked whether
we could proceed with the lesson topic a little faster than in the previous weeks. He was
frustrated with the constants interruptions. Jonas, for his part, believed that, given the
discipline issue, the possibility to make a progress had already been lost halfway through
the lesson. In this particular BoM classroom, I understood this lesson to have the first signs
of the students themselves starting to negotiate their collective understanding of group
masculinity (Paechter 2006) and a new kind of learning culture.
Lesson Eleven, which already had some ups and downs, ended with continuing the
penguin story group composition. The students were working in a group with their
instruments; at first, they were restless, but then something happened that totally turned
the course of the last part of the lesson. One of the students, Filip, came up with an idea
that caught the attention of the whole group. For a moment, the boys were cooperating
very intensely and made progress with their composition.
Anna
Hey, this is the one where the penguins march along the ice… how are they going to get to the water? Are they going to jump all together or do they jump one by one or how is it going to happen?
Emil
Together. It’s gonna’ be easier in that way.
Max
No… they kind of sweep to the water, first one, then the next one, kind of in a line…
Anna
Oh, you mean trrrr… [I draw an arrow to the air.] How do they sweep?
Filip
I’ll start like this… [Filip plays a glissando with his cello.] … and the trombone or what ever…
Max
Max reacts immediately and plays with the French horn a ‘splash’.
Filip
Just like that!
Anna
The French horn…
Filip
Right.
93
Anna
Could the French horn be the last one? Could the strings perhaps start by playing a long glissando? Whiiii…bom!
Filip
Yeah!
Anna
And the rest of you could just join in… let’s try this out. Let’s try, hey… hey, Max and Amos, you guys have to cooperate so that you get to the water at the same time, okay? Hey, the strings start, ready? Matt, please don’t go anywhere… [Matt is putting his violin away.] No, no… we need you and your violin now, come back, please. [Matt returns to his seat with his instrument.] Okay, we’re all set! Filip, what a great idea! Violins, are you ready to jump? And go, slide to the water… fantastic! Once more! And,here we go! Yay!
Hey, let’s try to combine this with the beginning. Hey, Sweeties, let’s combine this now. Starting from the beginning. Piano starts, one and, two and… hey, starts from the beginning. Listen, shh, shh, we have start with a silence… one and, two and… [The group is playing penguinsmarching on the ice.] … and now they arrive to the edge of the ice… slide! And now they are in the water.
Filip
No, no, they don’t slide but… uerm…it’s more like a take-off ramp going down… [Filip plays a glissando with his cello while explaining.] …kosshh!
Anna
Okay. Downwards… you mean low?
Filip
From here. [Filip shows with his cello.]
Anna
Yeah, that works! This sounds cool! Good! Okay, now we are in the water. What next?
In the stimulated recall -interview, Filip reflects upon the episode:
94
Anna
What can you tell about this episode?
Filip
Well, here we were planning our piece... and I was there… I was in a quite central part, actually…
Anna
How did you feel? Can you remember?
Filip
Yes I do.
Anna
Can you tell me?
Filip
It felt nice and so… like… like, that here, I invent something great…
Anna
Yeah… what did it look like… looking at it afterwards?
Filip
It felt like a nice situation.
Anna
Nice situation. How did you come up with that idea? Can you recall?
Filip
Well, my original idea was that they [the penguins] kind of would jump to the air… and then start to come down from the heights… they go like whoom… [Filip draws an arrow to the air and sings a glissando.] …When coming down and then the piano and the French horn go like ka-bam when they hit the water…
Anna
Okay, was the outcome what you had had in mind, or did it change along the process?
Filip
Didn’t change a bit.
Anna
Okay. Did it sound as nice as you had pictured?
Filip
Yeah!
Anna
Okay. How did you feel when you got such an idea and everybody came along?
Filip
Yeah, everybody…
Anna
How did it feel?
Filip
Really nice.
The conversation shows how significant it was for Filip to have his voice heard. He
clearly remembered how everybody accepted his proposal and cooperated to work out
the idea with him. So far, this was one of the rare moments where the boys truly were
connected and cooperated as a community of learners. And more importantly, the impulse
did not come from me, but from one of them. When I asked later, what does it take to get
one’s ideas to be accepted, Filip said:
Filip
Well, you have to dare to expose your idea... and you have to want to expose it...
Filip’s remark signals how the use of voice may indeed operate as a legitimator (Arnot
2006) in a learning community, and how direct and open communication rests on a mutual
respect, trust and commitment that need to be nurtured in everyday pedagogical situations
and in thea social life of a classroom.
Earlier in this chapter, I brought up the notion that when getting to the halfway
through of Phase Two, it appeared as if the boys had started to renegotiate their learning
culture and collective understanding of group masculinity (Paechter 2006) in the BoM
classroom. Two weeks later, the following episode from Lesson Thirteen even reinforced
that interpretation. One of the students, Emil, openly showed his resentment about the
disturbances:
Emil
Quiet!
Anna
Okay, Amos, let’s stop talking… Can you put that stuff away, please? Let’s put them here on the table, okay?.
Emil
Be quiet! [Still a lot of noise.]
Emil
Are you ever gonna’ finish talking?
Anna
Right…
95
Emil
It’s already five past…
Anna
Quite. Hey, let’s move on. Please, take go to page 32.
Matt
I don’t have a book.
Anna
Well, look on from Jonas’s book then…
Matt
From grandma’s book?
Anna
From Jonas’s book.
Matt
Oh, from Jonas’s grandma’s book?
Anna
Okay, well… how many of you have played some… Julius… Jonas, please turn the page, to the next page… no, I mean properly…shh, hey… how many of you guys have played a minor scale? Just any minor scale?
Max
I have played them all.
Anna
You have played, and you… [Many of the students have lifted their hands.]
Amos
I have played some.
Anna
You... and you… you must have played one minor scale… hey, guys, let’s first sing a major scale together …
Amos
We need silence now…
Jack
It’s twenty past…
Anna
We need silence now, come on Sweeties… shh… hey… Let’s sing the major scale now. We all know it for sure.
Jack
Really? He’s trying to nick my…
Anna
Please, don’t take Jack’s… let’s start from here: do, re, mi… [Some of the students participate the singing.]
In the next example, the group is trying to memorize a major scale by singing it
together, but the focus is elsewhere. Emil continues to complain about the noise:
96
Anna
Okay guys, let’s go again… your concentration cuts out all the time, guys…
Emil
Quiet!
Amos
Don’t you shout there…
Anna
Actually, Emil is right. Let’s just sing a major scale. Let’s try to sing it even once without breaking off. Amos, you too. Do, re, mi… And now, let’s sing the third below do. [I sing with the students]. Do, si, la... Hey, here goes, now the minor scale: la, si, do… Jonas, please sing along…
Matt
Do you have a picture of a pig?
Anna
And again, so that Jonas sings with us, ready? Here we go... Hey, Jonas is still not with us… Jonas, come on… please sing along…
Jack
It’s mine, it’s mine, don’t touch it, it’s mine!
Anna
You don’t need it now…
Matt
It almost hit my eye…
Anna
Hey, not now. Listen, the minor scale that we just sang, hey… [It is really noisy.] Hey guys, this is getting out of hands… Really now. Now it’s my turn to talk, okay?
Jack
Whose hands?
Jack goes for contesting the teacher script:
Anna
Hey Sweetie, please be quiet now and let me talk, okay? The minor scale that we just sang is the related key of the major scale that we first sang. It now happens that every major key has a related minor key. The related major and minor keys have one thing in common, namely the chromatic symbols.
Jack
Really?
Anna
Yep. And there is always one major and one minor scale that share the same chromatic symbols and those…
Jack
Is that right?
Anna
Hey, could you be quiet now, please? I could do without your cutting comments, okay? Really, I mean it.
Jack
They are not cutting.
Anna
Well, I think they are. Could you please just let go now? You don’t need to comment
On everything I say. So, please…
Jack
No I won’t…
Anna
Well, I think you should...
Jack
Why is that?
Anna
Well, if we can’t settle this between you and me, we have to discuss it with other people... the thing is that you just can’t behave like this in here.
Jack
I can’t?
Anna
No, you can’t.
Matt
I’m soon gonna’ cry because of this waiting… [To me:] You are clearing something up to this guenon and we just have to sit and wait…
Anna
Precisely. You see Jack, you really bore everybody with your behaviour now.
Jack
Yay.
Anna
All right. Where was I… yeah, a major and a minor scale that share the same chromatic symbols are thus called the related keys...
97
The lesson continues with the students familiarizing themselves with relative keys,
but the learning is unfocused and Jack continues his mission of challenging the teacher
script:
Matt
Do you have a car?
Anna
Yeah I do but let’s concentrate on this, okay?. Please, look at the page 32. [Noise.]
Anna
Hey, listen up guys, let’s concentrate on this… [A lot of noise.]
Matt
What kind of a car?
Anna
Hey, listen up, here on the page 32, we have the minor scale…
Jack
Let’s concentrate on this… let’s concentrate on this…
Emil
Be quiet! Concentrate on this!
Jack
That’s what kind of car she has…
Anna
Hey Jack, for how long are you planning to go on with this? Can you please stop now?
Jack
I’ll stop when everybody…
Anna
Jack, please stop this foolishness? Really.
Jack
I’ll stop when no-one…
Amos
The lesson has been going on for 35 minutes now…
Anna
Listen Jack, you have stop now because the others are complaining that it bugs them…
Max
We have only ten minutes left… Could everybody be quiet now?
Amos
35 minutes and we have got nothing done…
Anna
Yes, we have. We’ve got something done. We have checked the homework and learned a new topic, even though Jack is not willing to go along. So…
Matt
He’s trying to prevent us…
Anna
Hey, Sweetie, let’s just leave it now, okay…
In Phase One, when working with everybody together, Emil was determined to make
his own choices by not going along with the rebellious behaviours. Now and then, when
a number of the boys ignored the mutual classroom activities, Emil instead participated
rather in actively and even tried to act as a teacher’s helper. Hence, his behaviour seemed
to be directed by his individual choices rather than by the collective understandings of
masculinity (Paechter 2006) in the BoM classroom.
Further, the above episode illustrates not only Emil, but also Max, Amos and even Matt,
who all express their frustration with the constant interruptions. Jack, instead, is quite
resilient in sustaining his social space of underlife (Goffman 1961), challenging the teacher
script and giving up only when he notices that (this time) he was not getting any followers.
98
However, by contesting the classroom discursive practices, Jack actually contributes to
creating the potential for a third space (Gutierrez et al.1995) to develop. Consequently, the
majority of the boys indeed start to renegotiate their level of engagement and commitment
to the shared enterprise;, in that way, these boys participate in the construction of new
practices and a new learning culture in the BoM classroom.
In the stimulated- recall -interview Emil reflects:
Emil
Well, for example, when these boys shouted here... well they have stopped now since there isn’t anyone else but you to contest...
Anna
Oh... so are you saying that, in your opinion, they’re calmer now because of the lack of audience?
Emil
Yeah...
In the absence of the girls, Emil thought that the fact that the boys now had no-one to
show off in front of but me, gradually making them to change their behaviour. Another
explanation could be simply that the boys were getting tired with studying in such a restless
learning environment and therefore wanted to renegotiate the social practices in the BoM
classroom. Regardless, the tensions gradually led to the changes in the social environment
in the boys’ BoM classroom.
4.1.2 The Use of mobility, time and physical space
So far, I have discussed the use of student voice that appeared to be gender-differentiated
in the BoM classroom. In addition, the implications of adopting gender- based learner
identities showed in the different uses, between the girls and the boys, of mobility,
time and physical space. Also, the cultural demand for self-control seemed to direct the
girls’ engagements. While the boys took liberties in terms of not engaging in the mutual
activities, by wandering around the classroom or wrestling with each other, the girls often
chose the role of a viewer.
In the stimulated- recall interview, Veronika discussed this topic:
I wouldn’t have the nerve to get wild and ramble around in the classroom when the boys
are here. The boys, instead, have the nerve... trying to impress the others.
Veronika considered the boys’ presence, in particular, to be a reason for her own selfcontrol in the situations in which some of the boys behaved rebelliously. However, to me,
99
there was more to it. Since the restlessness of some of the students had become an issue
in negotiating the classroom discursive practices, I believe that part of her restraint was
due to her own observations of that such behaviour, at least in that magnitude, was not
deemed appropriate by me, as their teacher. Indeed, according to Mari Käyhkö (2011),
girls become trained to be more aware of what kind of social behaviour is expected from
them in educational contexts. Surprisingly, some of the boys noticed this as well. In the
stimulated- recall session, Amos mentioned that the feedback of the teacher’s feedback
was more important to the girls than to the boys.
Anna
How about then... some of the boys rambled around the classroom or were lying on the floor... took kind of liberties...
Amos
A bit...yeah...
Anna
Do you think girls would like to take same kind of liberties as boys do?
Or do you think they wouldn’t?
Amos
Well, I suspect they kind of would... like to take that those kind of liberties, but they necessarily don’t do it.
Anna
They would? Well, why don’t they then...
Amos
Because they might think that when the teacher comes to the classroom... [Imitates the girls.] “Hhmm... we might get a marking, so lets act reasonable”...and so they don’t do it...
Anna
So, are you saying that they think more about the consequences?
Amos
Yeah.
Anna
Okay...well, don’t boys then?
Amos
I think not. Well, I don’t at least... if I need to, say, make up a visit with my friend, I don’t care if I get a marking or not...
As said above, the clear differences in the mobility and the use of physical space between
the girls and the boys seemed to define the social interactions in the BoM classroom.
Consequently, the girls (and the minority of boys) often had to wait for the shared activities
to go continue. In that way, in the classroom activities, the boys dominated the use of time,
as well. Although the girls never openly protested against having to waiting during the
lessons, in the group interview, they expressed how annoying it was to wait for the boys
to get back to the group activities. Another way to look at the girls’ restraint in respect of
the use of mobility and physical space is to interpret their behaviour as showing agency
by because they noticed the possible connection between school success and their future.
Therefore, as Kirsti Lempiäinen (2007) claims, agency is not always a visible, ‘Pippi
Longstocking’ -type of action, doing acting contrarily, but can also be about being quiet
and keeping to the norms (p. 113).
100
In the stimulated- recall -interview, also Amos gave credit for to the girls:
Amos
...like the boys in our class, they just want to get out and play soccer and so... they don’t care too much whether they learn or not... and then when we have tests and all, they don’t do so well... but the girls go, like, “hey, I know this... it goes like this... this is easy”... and the boys, because they haven’t been practicing, they go, like, “help, I don’t know this”...
Anna
... so the girls kind of put more effort on learning, or…?
Amos
Yeah.
In terms of mobility and the use of physical space in the BoM classroom, another feature
that manifested gendered border work among the students, was the presence of tensions
in bodily interaction. This was showed particularly evident as an almost compulsory
need to maintain a physical space between the girls and the boys. For instance, girls
preferred sitting at tables with other girls, and boys with boys; girls preferred doing smallgroup assignments with girls, and boys with boys; and when asked to join into musical
assignments activities that involved bodily interaction, girls selected places next to the
other girls and boys next to the other boys. I, and inevitably, there always was a physical
gap between these two ‘spheres’.
After the third lesson I wrote in my teacher diary:
09-09-09
Today, we were doing some body-percussion. Funny, how the children tend to organize
themselves in a strictly divided circle, half girls and boys, respectively. And, how differently
these half-circles operate, too. The girls’ side looks calm and well-shaped. They mostly
listen to the instructions and actually do what is asked of them. On the boys’ side, instead,
there is constantly something going on:, purposely stepping on each other’s feet, pulling
their neighbour’s ears, briefly slapping the person next to them, pushing each other
around, and so on. And you have to repeat the instructions over and over again. Like two
completely different worlds.
Anttila makes similar observations in her (2003) study on third-graders participating in
dance lessons. She observed that not only did the qualities of the movements of girls’ and
boys’ differ, but also that there were clear distinctions in the ways girls and boys interacted
with each other. She noted that these differences were sometimes so great that they created
difficulties in managing the dance class (p. 75). As already discussed in Chapter 1.3, one
of these differences is the boys’ tendency to often form wider, hierarchically-organized
groups with an acknowledged leader, whereas girls often prefer socializing in pairs and
101
avoid conflicts (Hopearuoho-Saajala & Keskinen 1998).
In the stimulated- recall group interview, Ester reflects:
Ester
Some boys are wilder than others, but when they are alone... they don’t that much...
Anna
Get wild?
Ester
Well, usually those who kind of have many supporters... how should I put it now... they are the ones who get wild...
The boys, however, also learn to compromise and withdraw, and to renegotiate their
status in the hierarchy (Hopearuoho-Saajala & Keskinen 1998). Not all boys can, nor are
even willing to become leaders. Furthermore, boys seem to be more flexible than girls in
including new members to in their groups, as Hopearuoho-Saajala and Keskinen (1998)
suggest. Although the boys in the BoM classroom indeed often acted in bigger groups,
performing stereotypical rebellious behaviours, it is in important to highlight that this
study only examines this a single classroom with its unique social features, which were
locally negotiated, that is, negotiated among these particular children. In my previous
teaching experience, I have worked with groups of children who had similar kinds of
social challenges to those described in this study, as well as with groups without these
challenges.
In some cases, the boys in this study recognized the cooperation challenges. For
example, in the stimulated recall interview, Amos reflected on the cooperation between
the girls and the boys:
Amos
...cause boys, well, our cooperation doesn’t work, their [the girls’] works better... Our cooperation doesn’t work at all.
Anna
Whose cooperation?
Amos
Our... the boys’... but their works better...
Consequently, gendered border work seems to operate not only between the groupings by
regulating and stereotyping the collective and localized understanding of group femininity
and masculinity (what it means to be ‘a proper girl or a proper boy’ in a particular nexus),
but also inside the groupings by complicating the individual negotiations of femininities
and masculinities. In other words, gendered border work enacts performative terms, the a
variety of ‘doing’ girl or boy behaviours (Paechter 2006; see also West and Zimmerman
1987).
102
The tensions in bodily interactions also manifested themselves in musical situations,
involving, for example, musical movement, dancing or body percussion. The next following
episode, taken from the third lesson of Phase One depicts how gendered border work
can overdrive classroom interaction. Here, the lesson starts with a warm-up game and
body percussions, first, given by the teacher. Some of the boys only participate in the
activities part-time. Instead, they prefer talking over the rhythmic patterns built by the
others, shoving each other and purposely going off -beat. Despite the interruptions, other
students keep going on. Next, the students are asked to invent their own rhythmic patterns
and body percussions that then were performed and taught to the others. The students
seemed to be enthusiastic about sharing their own patterns and, for a moment, cooperated
actively. After introducing everybody’s body percussions, the next task is to collectively
build a percussive piece by using the rhythmic patterns invented by the students and to
arrange it to the given instrumentation:, dish brushes and foam mats. Before starting, the
students collectively become familiar with their instrument by making sound-inventions
and trying out different kinds of articulations when playing. However, engaging the actual
runs into difficulties soon after the starting:
Anna
[The students have been selecting some patterns to start with...] Hey, please be quiet now... [Talking.] Lets start with Pete’s pattern. How could we play it? [Most of the students try out different ways of playing Pete’s pattern. Four boys, including Pete himself, are quite unfocused.]
Anna
Hey, did everyone get this? Did everyone get Pete’s pattern? [The four boys still chat with each other while the others continue working on the pattern.]
Anna
Hey guys, here goes the pattern for you... Pete... Pete... from you till Amos... the four of you ... it goes like this... Julius, could you please play with us? [I play the pattern with the boys. One of the boys is ripping the foam mat...]
Anna
Please, don’t rip it. This one is just for you guys... [I show again the pattern to the same fourboys...] Others, please wait just for a little bit... [For a moment the boys are playing the pattern. One of the boys starts to hit another boy with the brush...] Please, don’t hit anyone, okay?
Anna
[For the next four students:] Now you guys... could you please play your pattern? [For the first group of four boys:] Please, keep your pattern going! [I simultaneously read the new pattern for the second group to support their playing. For the third group:] And now you guys... [I try to guide the third group, but in the meanwhile the first group has already started sword fighting with the brushes...]
Anna
Okey, okay... hey, let’s try this another time. It just doesn’t seem to work out today...
103
Looking back, I was not happy with my solution of stopping the playing altogether.
Instead, the four boys could have been asked to step aside while the rest of the group could
have kept going with the assignment. However, it was only the third lesson and I did not
want to carry out that harsh policy in the beginning, but was hoping to negotiate the social
rules in the classroom in a more constructive way. Clearly, the downside of my decision
was that I ended up devoting a lot of my attention to the four boys (see Francis 1998,
2000; Renold 2007 earlier in this chapter) while the rest of the group had to withstand our
negotiations. Hence, for my part, the situation required balancing between two undesirable
solutions. Inevitably, here the restlessness of some of the students created an issue of power
issue by hindering others’ participation.
Later in the stimulated- recall interview, the girls were discussing the situation:
Ester
It’s really annoying when someone is bugging...
Ada
Yeah, it feels awful...
Lily
Yeah, cause you just want to go on, but then... cause they were so noisy we Julia
couldn’t do it...
Yeah, you just can’t do it...
However, Ester, Anni, Lilja and Julia were no’t the only ones who felt that their access
to participation was compromised from time to time. From the beginning, Emil stood
out from the rest of the boys by consistently adopting a learner identity that was different
from his peers. He wanted to focus on learning and often appealed for silence when the
conversations got out of control. In the stimulated-recall interview, he expressed that he
was ashamed for of some of the boys’ behaviour and that he personally did not have any
difficulties in cooperating with anyone, a girl or a boy. Hence, although some of the boys
acted as part of a larger group, not all of the boys participated in these group activities.
Next, I will discuss what the consequences for the social interaction among the children
in terms of the use of mobility, time and physical space after we changed to the groups of
girls and boys.
Girls and the use of mobility, time and physical space
As discussed above, gendered border work (Thorne 1993; Bredesen 2004; Paechter
2006; Connell 2009; Berg 2010) seemed to operate not only between the groupings,
but also within the groupings, regulating and stereotyping the collective and localized
understanding of group femininity and group masculinity (Paechter 2006) in the BoM
104
classroom. Students manifest gendered border work by adopting quite polarized and
gendered social behaviours that created tensions in the classroom interactions. As shown
in Chapter Three and earlier in this chapter, these tensions cause inequalities among the
students when the access to shared activities, meaning-making and practicing agency is
compromised. Despite a great amount of time spent to negotiate a shared understanding
of the social rules in the BoM classroom, some students continued to contest the rules
every week.
For the girls’ group in Phase Two, the social-interaction tensions that, in phase Phase
One, seemed to limit participation in terms of the use of student voice, mobility, time and
physical space, no longer existed. As mentioned earlier in discussing the use of student
voice, the atmosphere appeared to be relaxed and focused and all the students engaged in
the activities equally. The social changes in the environment came up later, in the girls’
stimulated-recall interviews:
Veronika It feels easier because you [teacher] don’t all the time have to discipline the boys...
Iris
When the boys were here, we couldn’t learn so much...
Ester
You had to, all the time, interrupt... “no, please don’t do that”, if they [the boys] were doing something stupid...
Rebecka It always took a half of the lesson to calm them [the boys] down...
As noted before, in this particular BoM classroom, the use of mobility and physical
space was clearly gendered. The boys were extremely mobile and used physical space
freely by, for example, running around, laying on the floor or wrestling with each other.
The girls’ use of mobility and physical space, instead, was disciplined and they never did
not take such liberties. The literature explains, the differences in the social behaviours
between the girls and the boys, for example, in respect to cultural demands for self-control
regulating girls’ actions (e.g. Gordon 2006a), and girls being more aware about teacher’s
expectations (e.g. Käyhkö 2011). Research also suggests that teacher’s expectations are
different depending on student gender, allowing more freedom for boys than girls (e.g.
Skelton & Francis 2009; Renold 2001; Maynard 2002).
Additionally, in Phase One, the girls had in common that in their social interactions,
they managed to avoid conflicts. In Phase Two, this trend seemed to continue. However,
in the third lesson of Phase Two, Rebecka and Julia ran into a small conflict about the use
of physical space. While we were discussing the concept of key signatures, they suddenly
started to kick each other. It took a while to convince them to stop their quarrelling.
105
Anna
Okay, let’s figure out how the key system works…
Julia
Are we talking about major or minor keys?
Anna
Actually both. The keys… Hey, Rebecka and Julia, please don’t kick. Hey… we already discussed this earlier… Hey…let’s make some more space…
[I rearrange Rebecka and Julia’s seats.]
Julia
I prefer sitting here…
Anna
Are you sure? You can also come here.
Julia
No, I’d like to stay here.
Anna
Okay, but then please don’t wiggle your legs in someone else’s space… let’s just move your chair a bit further… [To Rebecka who still continues the kicking:] Hey, no need to keep on wiggling in someone else’s space, okay…
Ada
In someone else’s space…! [Laughing.]
Anna
Okay, look… last time, when we spoke about major scales, we found out that… Rebecka, Sweetie, please don’t do that anymore. [Rebecka is still kicking.]
Rebecka It doesn’t even hit her…
Anna
Maybe not, but it irritates Julia. Hey, Rebecka… Sweetie… Look, if it irritates the other, it’s a good reason to stop. Here you go. And Julia, could you please get up? [Rebecka still continues the kicking.] Hey Rebecka, could you please stop now, because it’s irritating. You don’t need to do that. Okay?
Lily
“She irritates me”… [Lily imitates Julia.]
Anna
Hey Lily, let’s not continue anymore… Where was I? Building a The major scale builds up…
Obviously, this was just only a small quarrel, presumably nothing extraordinary in any
classroom. It does, however, demonstrate that rejection or and exclusion also belong to
the social realm of girls (Hopearuoho-Saajala & Keskinen 1998). It is worth noting here
because, as discussed above, in the girls’ group, the Phase Two change in the classroom
culture was notable and enabled more equal participation among the students. Moreover, it
also seemed to create a new kind of social space in this particular context for negotiating
identities, such as what being a ‘girl’ implied, and for expressing feelings, even if they
were negative ones. Hence, even though a quarrel is not desirable, in my interpretation in
this case, the message behind it was revealing – that it is legitimate to expressing feelings.
Although it is not possible to make any generalizations beyond this particular classroom,
for these girls, moving to the girl-only group offered a learning space with a wider range
of possibilities to act and interact when engaging in the shared activities.
106
Boys and the use of mobility, time and physical space
In terms of the use of mobility, time and physical space, Phase Two did not at first bring any
changes to the social interaction in the boys’ group. The ‘mobile boys’, who had a desire for
physical contacts, were still acting up. The first three Phase Two lessons comprised many
social ups and downs, and it required determination to turn the situation around. However,
as shown above in episodes taken from previous lessons, the boys themselves, little by
little, started to renegotiate the conditions of their learning environment by protesting
against the distractions. Especially, the way that some students repeatedly dominated
the use of time for the rest of the group evoked protests. Gradually the tensions due to
the student underlife (Goffman 1961) maintained by some of the boys led into positive
changes in the boys’ social life of in the BoM classroom. These conversations were dealt
with earlier in this chapter when discussing the use of student voice, so I will not address
them again here.
From a teacher perspective in this particular BoM classroom, dealing with the
almost overwhelming ‘mobility’ of some boys was at times troublesome and required
constant balancing with the expectations of acceptable behaviour. I deliberately aimed
at facilitating a semiformal, laboratory-like learning environment that would invite the
students to explore music and exchange opinions in a free manner, to play and experiment
in order to gain a sense of agency, a sense of being able to ‘do things’ with music. This
kind of freedom, however, comes with responsibility. Particularly in a classroom- based
learning, some students’ freedoms should not limit the freedom of the others to engage
in the shared activities and the processes of learning (see also Anttila 2003, 303). Hence,
what one should do with the given freedoms was a topic of many our conversations when
negotiating the social practices in the BoM classroom. In some classrooms, such social
sensibility comes naturally; in other classrooms, it requires constant practice. All in all, the
children’s interactions in this BoM classroom often made me think that the complications
in the social behaviours were not that as much about real differences, as such as they were,
but rather about holding gendered beliefs and preconceptions due to gendered border
work.
107
4.2 Holding gendered beliefs and preconceptions
In this study, the BoM classroom is examined as a children’s music-learning community
(Wenger 1998/2003; 2002) but and also as a local community of femininity and masculinity
practices (Paechter 2006). In such a contextualized community of practice, femininities
and masculinities are negotiated collectively and in relation to various kinds of outside
influences, conceptions and representations (Paechter 2006). These transforming and
interrelated inner and outer influences construct an ever-changing, localized and shared
view about what is fundamental to being a girl or a boy in this a particular context (ibid.).
In these negotiations, when falling into gendered border work (Thorne 1993; Bredesen
2004; Paechter 2006; Connell 2009; Berg 2010), femininity is directly defined directly
in juxtaposition to masculinity (Paechter 2006, 366-367). In the BoM classroom, such
polarizations often seemed to originate, not from the differences as such, but from the
holding of gendered beliefs and preconceptions.
The next episode depicts well the juxtaposition driven by gendered border work. It
is taken from a group work situation, in which the children were collectively trying to
picking a topic for an upcoming music composition assignment. They were asked to
collectively come up with an animal, explore its characteristic features and create a small
performance using mime.
Veronika Okay, which animal then?
Amos
A human, a human...
Veronika It’s not an animal...
Ester
A dog. It’s an animal. Or what then?
Julius
A human.
Amos
Hey, let’s be Minimoys. [Laughing.] They are little elves...
Veronika Let’s be goblins. You namely look like one...
Ester
Let’s be penguins...
Jonas
Let’s be sharks...
Amos
Yeah, sharks that play rock, ding, di-ding, di-ding, di...
Ester
Okay, that is a penguin then?
Max
Yeah, but we have just ten minutes left...
Ester
Well what then?
Jack
Let’s be a dog, or a cat, or a horse, or an elephant...
Julius
A human.
Amos
A monkey... I know what we could be...
Ester
What then?
Amos
Let’s be “a little beetle passes here”... let’s be worms... let’s be... let’s be 108
rappers... oh yeah...
Ester
Hey, any animal now! [Lots of simultaneous suggestions...]
Amos
Hey, now I know, I know... a human!
Veronika Hey, really! You are going to loose that bet...
Amos
Really, everybody now... [Amos apes Veronika’s voice...]
Veronika You are going to loose our bet...
Ester
Yeah, we made a bet with that... [Ester points at Amos...] whether the boys can behave or not...
Veronika Penguin?
Amos
No!
Jack
A dog?
Veronika Not a dog...
Amos
No... [However, everybody starts to practice a ‘penguin-walk’.]
Jack
A horse?
Amos
Let’s be penguins. Kviik, kviik... just for your knowledge: this is a penguin.
Veronika What ever... let’s be penguins then.
Ester
We are penguins. [Lots of simultaneous talk.]
Jack
What if they’d walk somewhere and the whole ice would crack?
Amos
I’m dying... yeah but we are not penguins. Let’s be rather be...say... mammoths... mammoths, mammoths...
This conversation was carried out when I was working elsewhere with half of the
group and was not present in the classroom. It appears to be a typical gendered border
work situation that involved power negotiations among the children. It looks as if the girls
and the boys would have disagreed and taken an oppositional stand only just on principle,
in order to maintain a the gendered groupings and draw a line within the group between
the girls and the boys.
This was also confirmed by Ester:
Boys think that they ought not to agree with our ideas just because we are girls... because
we are so different and like such different things...
And Julia continued:
Even if they [the boys] liked the idea they just don’t want to agree with the girls...
109
In the second group, the situation was looking quite the same:
Lily
Okay, James Bond is not an animal…
Emil
An elephant…
Jonas
Nah… nothing with ears…
Emil
A frog…
Iris
No… [Matt plays secret agent in the background.]
Matt
I’m a monkey…
Lily
Let’s pick monkey… monkey is a cute animal… [Laughter.]
Matt
Okay, I’m a monkey…
Emil
A gorilla…
Jonas
Nah…
Emil
Let’s pick a beaver then…
Matt
Yeah, a beaver… [Matt starts immediately to play beaver.]
Lily
An elephant… [Laughter.]
Filip
A lizard then…
Iris
No…
Lily
An elephant…
Jonas
No…
Emil
A hippo…
Matt
A hippo?
Emil
Just a suggestion…well, a panther then…
Ada
Nope…
Emil
A leopard…
Lily
No… Hey, you’re going to loose the bet…
Matt
Well, who came up with this?
Iris
I don’t wanna’ imitate any…
Lily
A turtle… how could we imitate a turtle? I know, we can be like this… [Two of the students try to imitate turtles…]
Emil
Turtles are not that high… I suppose they are this high… [Three more students start to imitate turtles.]
Emil
A lizard…
Lily
No!
Emil
A snake…
Lily
No!
Filip
Let’s vote…
Jonas
Yeah, let’s vote…
Matt
Okay, I’m going to be an ape anyway…
Jonas
I’m not in…
110
Emil
An owl, a hawk, an eagle…
Lily
[To Jonas:] You don’t accept anything…
Emil
Okay… this is simple…
Matt
I can be a tree…
Lily
You don’t even try… Hey, really…
Emil
Really now… Stop… Cut the hassle…
Matt
Hey, I could tell a joke…
Ada
This doesn’t help… you’re just mixing everything up…
Emil
We don’t get anything done, if you don’t stop… [Some boys are hassling around.]
Also in this group, the negotiation seemed to keep breaking down because of gendered
border work. However, Emil who worked with this group, was consistent in his agency and
was in cooperating with everybody and following his personal preferences rather than just
falling into gendered groupings.
In the stimulated recall interview, Emil reflects:
Well, they [girls] have a little bit different taste... that’s why it was so difficult... they [the
girls] wanted us to be bunnies or something... that would have been fine by me, but the
others thought that it was lousy...
And later:
Well, you know, I accepted quite many of the proposals that the girls made... some of
them were a little... say, I for example, I suggested a hippo... but as an example, had they
proposed a hawk or a chicken... well, I think I wouldn’t have accepted a chicken right
away...
Emil’s agency in acting and interacting with others importantly refers to something
that salient when trying to understand children’s gendered negotiations; namely that
gendered border work is situational. Gender differences are emphasized in some situations
and overridden in others. As discussed in Chapter 1.3, the recent literature suggests that
children do not socialize to in gendered categories passively, but create agency in gender
by stepping in and out of these conventionalized categories (Thorne 1993; Bredesen
2004; Paechter 2006; Connell 2009; Berg 2010). Consequently, gendered border work is
important per se, because it is a part of the natural process of growing up. However, when
not addressed in the social life of a classroom, it easily causes polarization, emphasizing
stereotypical groupings rather than individual thinking. Also here, maintaining the
111
gendered groupings seemed to be more important than acting according to personal likes,
even if it meant accepting proposals that came ‘from the other side’.
Phase Two of the research project reinforced my impressions about the polarization,
which from time to time complicated the cooperation among the children when working
all together. Although, the children themselves had recognized that the girls and the boys
simply had a different taste from each other; it looked as if the choices they made were
driven by the desire to maintain the groupings rather than by the aesthetic views. Now
in Phase Two, when working in the groups of girls and boys, the students in both groups
interestingly made similar kinds of choices when not knowing of the choices made by the
other group. Both the girls and the boys, for example, settled upon composing the story of
the penguins just because it generated more musical ideas for the composition.
Although the gendered beliefs and preconceptions neither directed the making of
choices, nor did they drive the classroom interactions in the same manner as in Phase
One, I still think that they were evident in the children’s own conceptions about different
behaviours that were, in their mind, expected from the girls and the boys, respectively
in the educational contexts. In next section, I am discussing how the children balanced
between their own expectations, my expectations as their teacher, the cultural demands
and the localized understandings of group masculinity and femininity, when negotiating
learner identities in this particular BoM classroom.
4.3 Shifting between ‘good student’ and ‘rebel student’ identities
So far, I have discussed the different modes of participation that sometimes even caused
inequalities among the students, and the complications in the interactions due to holding
gendered beliefs and pre-conceptions, both between the gendered groupings and inside the
groups of girls and boys. The third salient feature that characterized the social interaction
in the BoM classroom was the gendered polarization between the girls and the boys in
adopting learner identities. In Chapter 4.1, I addressed the use of voice, mobility, time and
physical space related to situations in which the students negotiated access to participation.
In addition, two different forms of underlife (Goffman 1961) emerged when students
adopted one of two polarized identities, the so-called ‘good student’ or ‘rebel student’.
These two identities often follow according to gender identities, that is girls and
boys respectively adopt the ‘good student’ and ‘rebel student’. Similarly, Becky Francis
(1998, 2000) has identified a sensible/silly dichotomy in English classrooms, suggesting
that primary school -age children construct the two genders as oppositional. The female
112
construction is valued with ‘sensible’ qualities. Girls are expected to be mature, obedient,
neat, selflessly giving and facilitating. The masculine construction involves ‘silly’ qualities.
Boys are identified as immature, messy, and naughty, selfishly taking and demanding
(Francis 1998; Paechter 2006). According to Paechter (2006), constructing group versions
of femininity or masculinity does not mean that they are monolithic or all-embracing.
Drawing from Ali (2003), she claims that some aspects of group femininity or group
masculinity, however, cross settings, class and ethnic boundaries “with the overarching
effect of distinguishing girls from boys” (p. 367). These dichotomies are not only pervasive
in the ways that children understand femininity and masculinity, but are also common to
teachers and widespread in the society, Paechter (2006) claims.
As discussed earlier, in this particular BoM classroom, the learner identities adopted by
the girls and the boys appeared to be gender-specific and even consistent. Moreover, both
the girls and the boys seemed to have gendered beliefs not just about the ‘other side’, but
also about themselves as a group. In that way, these localized and shared understandings
seemed to define their ways of engagement also inside the groups, emphasizing the
classroom polarization (see Chapter 1.3).
4.3.1 The double-edged sword of being a ‘good student’
As shown above, the girls effortlessly adopted the role of a so-called ‘good student’.
They were focused, engaged in all the shared activities and did not cause distractions.
However, the findings indicate that their access to participation was at times limited. The
majority of the boys, instead, engaged in the shared activities selectively. They dominated
the classroom talking (see Table 3, Chapter 4.2.1) and the use of mobility, time and
physical space by repeatedly interrupting the shared activities, generally compromising
the participation for others. Evidently, in these situations, the girls were marginalized to a
bystander role. In the stimulated-recall group interview, I asked what would make a nice
learning environment; Ester and Iris reflected:
Ester
Well... um... that it was peaceful... that the others wouldn’t bug... peace...
Iris
Yeah, same as Ester...
Anna
That it would be peaceful?
Iris
Yeah...
Consequently, the girls’ view and their role of a ‘good student’ are not unambiguous.
Despite girls often being recognized as the ‘good students’, a number of studies suggest
that the image of an active, exploring and learning child is a masculine-one; this masculine
113
characterization can make it difficult for girls to adopt the identity of an active learner [or
a learning agent] in a classroom (Walkerdine 1984; Renold 2001; Skelton & Francis 2002;
Gordon 2006a; Paetcher 2006). Instead, girls often adopt quasi-teacher roles keeping an
eye on boys (Walkerdine 1984; Paechter 2006). Moreover, although girls often display
cultural literacy (Schirato & Yell 2000), a recognizetion of the social rules, and have a
sense for negotiating those rules, the BoM-classroom girls’ reflections also revealed a
sense of powerlessness and frustration being marginalized.
The following episode demonstrates how the girls monitored the boys while they were
all trying to finish a group assignment. After a long negotiation, the group managed to
choose a penguin as their animal topic. Outside the classroom before the lesson even
started, the girls had made a bet with the boys that they would not be able to behave during
the lesson. Since the group assignment did not quite progress as they were hoping, the girls
reminded the boys about the bet and tried to persuade them into cooperating and finishing
the task. The girls’ ‘sweeat talk’ already started in the previous episode in (discussed in
Chapter 4.2); the bet ends here with the acknowledgement that the boys have now lost the
bet.
Ester
All right, everybody... let’s practice...
Julius
Let’s do first like this and then...
Jack
No, it doesn’t work...
Veronika We have like three seconds, three seconds... and you think we can perform this? [Some of the boys are fooling around...] Hey please...
Ester
Hey really... look at those... [Ester is pointing at the boys.]
Julius
You did that stupid Michael Jackson -thing... [Laughing.]
Ester
Hey, come here now... Hey, you are being really stupid...
Amos
Okay, once more and then we are ready...
Jack
And then just a bit of improvisation if it doesn’t work...
Veronika And remember to join us right when they get off the water... Hey, you can’t talk... [Some of the boys are dancing around the classroom...] you were supposed to go there, and you shouldn’t keep making noise... we’ll see if you’ll make it then [in the performance]...
Amos
Okay... once again...
Julius
We still have... [Julius points at his watch...]
Amos
Okay, ready... go!
Julius
We have thirty seconds minus-time...
Veronika You are so losing your bet now! Sorry, but you already lost the bet...
Amos
Really? Silencio! I have for a second time lost a bet to a girl!
Veronika You all lost the bet to the girls! Little embarrassing, isn’t it?
114
Obviously here, the access to the mutual negotiation and shaping of the meanings
(Wenger, 1998/2003) was compromised due to a power struggle caused by gendered
border work. The interaction lacked mutual respect and a sense of community; and, despite
of their efforts, the boys did not take the girls’ suggestions seriously. The girls’ attempts
to adopt a quasi-teacher role did not pay off either. On the contrary, it only seemed to
emphasize the polarization.
In Phase One, practicing self-control clearly distinguished the girls from the more
mobile and noisy boys. However, their restraint tended to marginalize them in the
situations in which the boys dominated the classroom interactions. As discussed earlier,
Wenger (1998/2003) suggests that identities are constructed through the practices in which
we engage in, but as importantly, through the practices we do not. Hence, not participating
in the boys’ doings could be seen, for one, as a means for negotiating the collective
understanding of group femininity in the BoM classroom. Another sensible way to look at
the girls’ restraint would be to understand it as a form of underlife (Goffman 1961), that is,
as an attempt to fit into the existing institutional structures, norms and practices that were
under negotiation in the BoM classroom.
4.3.2 The vulnerable ‘rebels’
Looking from a perspective of teaching practice, the word that best descibed these
particular boys’ engagements in the BoM classroom was ‘unpredictability’. Although I
have discussed the subject of the rebellious behaviour of some of the boys many times, a
single lesson might include both quite very promising interactions and quite challenging
ones. A boy shifting between the identity of a ‘good student’ and a ‘rebel student’ was
confirmed in three ways. First, the boys repeatedly caused conflicts by creating distractions
during the shared activities. Although these conflicts always ended in a mutual agreement
about the social rules that one should follow during the lessons, some of the boys repeated
the pattern in every lesson. Secondly, the girls confirmed that the role of the boys was
rebellious when they made a bet that the boys likely would not be able to behave during
the lesson. And thirdly, interestingly enough, two of the boys themselves pushed me to
identify them as ‘rebel’ students.
Matt
Which do you like more, girls or boys?
Anna
Oh... both are equally nice.
Matt
We are naughty... look, I’m touching this... [Matt plays ‘naughty’.]
Anna
Okay... well, to how many would you count in this next piece?
Jack
I want you to consider us stupid.
115
Anna
Excuse me?
Jack
I want you to consider us stupid.
Anna
Stupid? Why would you want that?
Jack
Because.
Anna
Hey come on... [laughing]... I was wondering to how many does one count in this next...
Jack
My parents consider me stupid.
Anna
What? Who do...?
Jack
My parents do.
Anna
Your parents consider you stupid? No they don’t.
Jack
My father does... he hates me and thinks I’m lazy...
Max
My older brother considers me awfully stupid...
Anna
Hey, I am sure they don’t... they consider you really smart...
The previous week’s lesson had been quite restless and we had had a long talk about
how to turn around the situation around in order to promote a cosy learning environment.
Thus, Matt’s questioning me: “Which do you like more, girls or boys?”, was perhaps was
a follow-up to that conversation. In turn, Jack’s comment, about wanting me to consider
them stupid, took me by a surprise. He obviously wanted to be identified as a rebel, one but
at the same time, he exposed his vulnerability, especially when talking about his father.
He was quite a visible figure in the classroom, and, in that way, had a notable role when
negotiating the collective understanding of group masculinity among the boys. Hence,
a student building up a learner identity does not take place only in the relation to the
teachers and curriculum, but also in the social spaces of classrooms, playgrounds, peer
groups, homes and other places outside school. Furthermore, Jack’s comments leave room
to suggest that he may have been struggling with low self-esteem, which came out as
an attempts to seek attention from the others with rebellious behaviour. Indeed, when
studying boys in educational contexts, Francis (1999) was able to identify a ‘laddish’
construction of masculinity, and found it to be invested with high peer- group status in
the secondary- and even in the primary- schooling (see also Skelton & Francis 2009).
According to Francis (1999), ‘laddish’ behaviours in the classroom are disruptive and as
such complicate classroom-based learning.
Thus, the boys’ intensity in contributing to the shared activities varied a lot, shifting
from quite rebellious behaviours to showing a notable learning agency. The following
episode depicts Amos, Max and Emil actively cooperating and solving the a task together:
conducting a rhythmic dictation. Halfway through the exercise, Jonas also joins in by
clapping the pattern with the others.
116
Amos
[Amos claps a rhythm...] I got it right! ... Because “daaa-da-daa-”...
[4/4 j eq Q]... Hey!
Amos
Hey, Anna, I got it right! Anna, I got it...
Max
Jeah, jeah, you did it the same way as I did... [Max shows his dictation to Amos. Both are laughing.]
Q with Amos
Nope, I corrected mine... [Amos claps and reads the pattern 4/4 j eq
the rhythmic syllables.]
Emil
It should be “daaa-da-daa-” [Emil claps the pattern once again.]
Jonas joins in...]
Emil
No, it’s instead “daaa-da-daa-ZUK!” [Emil claps the rhythm and opens his arms when saying ‘zuk’ in order to demonstrate the rest in at the end of the bar. Max claps along.]
Max
Daa-daa...
Emil
Yeah, but the last-one is only the beat... [Emil continues clapping...]
Emil
It goes like this... [Emil claps the rhythm and simultaneously adds the beat to with his feet...]
Max
I wanna’ show, I wanna’ show, Anna please come... or... [Max lifts his book, wanting to show his solution.]
[Now Amos and Max clap the rhythm 4/4 j eq
Q together and also The episode demonstrates how the boys indeed were capable of collaboration when
committed to the shared activities. When Amos and Max did not seem to get the pattern
right, Emil started to coach them, at first, verbally by clapping the pattern simultaneously.
When Amos and Max still did not observe the quarter-rest at the end of the bar, Emil
added the beat with his feet in order to make his demonstration even more effective, and it
paid off. Halfway through the episode, Jonas, who was sitting at the table with everyone,
also joined in the collaborative pattern clapping. So, the episode evidently also involved a
moment of peer learning.
I have suggested that, in the BoM classroom, students manifested the localized
femininity and masculinity practices by adopting polarized learner identities. The
femininity practices involved sensible and restrained ‘good-student’ behaviours, whereas
the masculinity practice allowed far more liberties in terms of social interaction, even
and involving rebellious behaviours. It could be suggested that these dichotomic student
roles could partly be explained by children falling into gendered border work (e.g. Thorne
1993). In order to maintain the gender groupings, the girls had a need to stand out and
identify themselves as learners differently from the boys; likewise, the boys identified
themselves differently from the girls, even if it implied adopting the ‘rebel student’
identity. Standing out individually appeared to be complicated when the group identities
117
were emphasized. However, as Emil’s example shows, it also was possible to perform
masculinities differently and to make individual choices.
4.4 Summary
To summarize this chapter, I have argued that, in the BoM classroom under study, gendered
border work (e.g. Thorne 1993) interfered in the processes of learning when students
adopted gender- based learner identities (Gordon 2006a) and held gendered beliefs and
pre-conceptions. Gender- based learner identities were evident in the different uses of
student voice, mobility, time and physical space between the girls and the boys. Moreover,
they were manifested when girls and boys respectively adopted so-called ‘good student’
and ‘rebel student’ identities. In the gendered border work -situations, students often
negotiated the femininity and masculinity practices (Paetcher 2006) in a juxtaposition
to one another, causing social boundaries. These boundaries complicated the forming of
memberships (Wenger 1998/2003), hindering the a sense of community from developing;
at least my preferred form of community in which everybody could have practiced their
agency equally. Evidently, in the social space of underlife, some of the boys constructed
their own masculinity community of practice. However, not everybody had an access to
their community. Among some students, this complication showed as restlessness and
incapability to notice the needs of others in the processes of learning. In particular, the
use of student voice divided the girls and the boys, restricting the access to contributing
to shared meaning-making and the gaining of ownership of meaning (ibid.), thus causing
learning inequalities.
Despite these complications and inequalities, the students learned to cooperate and
renegotiate the norms and practices in the BoM classroom. In Phase One, when working
as with everybody together, the interaction varied from times of concentration and
cooperation to times of distractions and conflicts. All along, the girls showed more cultural
literacy (Schirato & Yell 2000) and sensibility in the social situations when engaging
in the classroom discursive practices. Yet, their performing of ‘good student’ identities
was not entirely unproblematic when they tried to balance between the others’ needs and
expectations and their own. In terms of learning environment in Phase Two, when working
in the groups of girls and boys, in terms of learning environment, the positive change
was notable and immediate in the girls’ group, offering a wider range of possibilities to
participate and practice musical agency. In the boys’ group, the process of negotiating
new norms and shared practices took place gradually. After many joint conversations, the
crucial impulse for renegotiating the classroom culture came from the boys themselves.
118
In that way, the forms of student underlife (Goffman 1961) that had particularly in phase
one caused tensions and conflicts among the students in Phase One resulted in a gradual
social change in the boys’ BoM classroom.
In the next chapter, I will discuss the multi-voicedness of the BoM classroom, and
the happenings within the classroom discourse that allowed for the crossing of gendered
boundaries.
119
5 The BoM classroom reaching for social change
In Chapter Four, I examined the interactions in the BoM classroom in Phase One, when
working with everybody together, and in Phase Two, when working in the groups of
girls and boys. My used the constructed themes: 1) modes of participation; 2) holding
gendered beliefs and preconceptions; and 3) shifting between ‘good student’ and ‘rebel
student’ identities. These three themes allowed me to recognize and isolate events and
manifestations of the children’s gendered negotiations that, in my mind, directed the
construction of memberships and ownership of meaning among the children participating
in BoM. These events significantly revealed tensions and conflicts among the children
when the localized femininity and masculinity practices (Paechter 2006) were negotiated
in juxtaposition to one another due to falling into gendered border work (e.g. Thorne
1993). However, the events also demonstrated moments of intensive cooperation when
engaging in shared activities, and situations in which the tensions of student underlife
(Goffman 1961) led into negotiating new, positive kinds of norms and practices in the
BoM classroom.
In this chapter, I focus on the multi-voicedness in the BoM classroom, and the potentials
for bridging the multiple social spaces and, potentials for third space (Gutierrez et al. 1995),
in order to promote transformation and social change in learning. As discussed in Chapter
1.4, this study understands agency to include one’s own conceptions about the range of
possibilities to act and interact socially. Some philosophers have argued that the idea of
agency also refers to one’s capability for self-reflection and self-evaluation (e.g. Taylor
1998). Gendered agency can be conceptualized as constructed through our experiences
and accumulated knowledge about gender; in that way, gendered agency connects the
processes of identity work to the systems of power that operate in everyday activity, like
for example, in the social life of the BoM classroom (McNay 2004).
5.1 ‘Emma’ and ‘Amos’: Two constructed narratives
This study adopts a standpoint that one’s own conceptions about the range of possibilities
to act and interact socially are crucial for gaining a sense of agency. Therefore, children’s
own experiences should be noticed when trying to understand their interaction in the
social spaces of learning. According to creativity researcher Mihály Csíkszentmihályi
(1990), in children’s music education too much emphasis is put on the ways children
perform in children’s music education, at the same time, overlooking what they children
experience. In this study, I aim to give voice to the children themselves in order that they
120
may reflect on their own learning. The following two constructed characters of ‘Emma’
and ‘Amos’ are an attempt to further do so.
The narratives of ‘Emma’ and ‘Amos’ reveal children’s own reflections about their
experiences of the social interaction when participating in BoM. I constructed the
narratives using both the group- and the individual stimulated-recall interviews of Phase
One; so, they consist of the reflections of several children. I have chosen to present these
narratives for two reasons. First, despite their polarization and even provocativeness,
they actually serve as to bringing out the flavour of the sometimes ambivalent nature of
children’s gendered interaction and of what gendered border work may be about. Secondly,
their juxtaposition illuminates children’s capabilities for making insightful observations
when reflecting on themselves as well as on the others.
Here, ‘Emma’ reflects about the social life in the BoM classroom:
I’ve been sitting here for a while now. Waiting. I don’t mind. Well, actually, I do
mind. In fact, I mind a lot. This waiting is making me very cross. Just like always,
I’m sitting on my chair and waiting for the boys to calm down. We all do, the
girls I mean. The teacher is trying to get on with the lesson. She keeps starting
all over again from the beginning, but the boys keep interrupting her. But I know
the beginning already – I’ve heard it three times now. Now she is getting a little
bit cross and starts shouting. She is shouting at the boys, but sometimes it feels as
if she is cross at us, too, although we’re just sitting and waiting nicely and quietly.
Anyway, the class is ruined now.
Now the teacher starts again, for the fourth time. The boys keep trying to impress
us by doing what they always do. Because that’s what it’s all about. They think they
are so cool when they’re being naughty. And they don’t mind when the teacher gets
cross at with them. But they don’t fool me. I think that they are just pretending to
be naughty. Because I’ve noticed that they’re never naughty when they’re on their
own. It’s only when they’ve got an audience. But sometimes it’s really annoying
when we have to stop doing something that is really nice just because of the boys.
Like today, when we were doing percussion with the dish brushes. The boys were
mainly sword fighting with each other.
I would never act like that, not even if I wanted to. But I think the boys just think
that we’re so different from them. Their games are a bit rough. Yeah, I wouldn’t
play in all of them. Maybe if they just tried out some of our games they’d realize
we’re actually not very different from each other. What is different, though, is our
121
taste. We like cute things. The boys don’t. They would never draw something that’s
cute. It would be far too embarrassing.
And that’s what they hate most of all – getting embarrassed in front of the girls. I
can understand that. I wouldn’t want to get embarrassed in front of them, either.
The thing is, I think, that the boys don’t dare to show their feelings to us. If they’re
happy or sad, it’s just too awkward. Sometimes I’ve seen some of the boys trying
not to cry, when they’ve hurt themselves. I think that’s sad.
This noise is starting to get to me. It’s so tiring and it’s getting a little bit hard to
concentrate on the class. But the most difficult thing is when we have to work in
groups. That really doesn’t work at all. It never does. Sometimes I feel that the boys
only want to disagree with us just because they’re boys and we’re girls. They just
can’t accept our ideas because they are ours. Every time we suggest something they
just say no. And usually after a while, we give up and accept one of their ideas, just
to get the job done. See, we really want to get it done, and sometimes we beg the
boys to behave themselves, even for a day.
The reflections made by the girls in the stimulated recall group and individual interviews
after Phase One illustrate how the uneven power was distribution in the BoM classroom
in phase one when working as a whole class. The girls expressed their frustration about
that their having their access to full participation being was limited by the disturbances.
Having the boys around we don’t learn anything, because they are just yelling and being
noisy... (Emma)
You had to all the time interrupt... “no, please don’t do that”, if they [the boys] were doing
something stupid... (Ester)
Usually we eventually give in to their suggestions... cause we don’t want to argue... (Ester)
In the lessons, the girls adopted the identity of the ‘good student’, showing consistent
self-control in situations in which some of the boys kept interrupting the classroom
activities, leaving the rest of the class to a role of a bystander.
I wouldn’t have the nerve to get wild and ramble around in the classroom when the boys
are here. The boys, instead, have the nerve... trying to impress the others. (Veronika)
122
It was however only later in the stimulated recall interview that the girls expressed
how irritated they actually felt about the situation. Hence, expressing those feelings and
claiming for social space on-site, that is, in the classroom during the lessons, did not seem
to be within their reach.
It’s really annoying when someone is bugging... (Ester)
Yeah, cause you just want to go on, but then... cause they [the boys] were so noisy we
couldn’t do it... (Lily)
When analysing the causes for the disruptiveness, individual girls made quite
straightforward assumptions about themselves and about the boys as unified groups, about
their likes in general, and about their attitudes towards learning.
Well, of course their [the boys’] games are different... (Lily)
Girls are more sensible... girls draw all kinds of cute things... the boys think it’s awkward
and don’t do it even if they wanted to... (Julia)
Boys think that they ought not to agree with our ideas just because we are girls... because
we are so different and like so different things... (Ester)
Even if they [the boys] liked the idea they just don’t want to agree with the girls... (Julia)
At the same time, however, they tried to come up with some ways to explore and
experiment with the activities that commonly were thought to belong to the realm of boys,
and to invite the boys to do the same.
Yeah... the boys should also try out the games we like... cause they can’t know what they
are like, since they’ve never tried them... (Ester)
They saw the boys’ vulnerability under the surface of boys and showed empathy about
the situations in which some boys, in their mind, did not dare to show their true emotions
or likes.
The boys just play thug... (Lily)
They [boys] think that the girls and the boys have different rules... like that they [the boys]
ought not to cry in affront of the others... ‘cause that’s something the girls do... (Ester)
It feels sad to see someone [a boy] trying to hold his tears... (Lily)
123
‘Amos’ might see the things from a slightly different angle:
Ten more minutes to go. I have to leave a little bit early because of football practice.
It has been a little bit noisy in here today. The lesson I mean. I feel a bit ashamed
about it. Six more minutes. I have to remember to take my guitar when I leave. I
kind of like it in here when we actually do something. When we play together or
compose our own music. But I’d rather skip the theory part. I know I should work
harder and behave myself more, but I’m thinking about other things. I think most
of the boys feel the same.
The girls are better in that way at least. They are clever enough to concentrate on
doing their work. They don’t play around like we boys do. I suppose they don’t
want to. Or perhaps the older girls do... anyway, they care more about what the
teacher says. That seems to be important to them. I don’t think too much about it.
Sometimes the girls try to calm me down as well. They ask, why don’t you just stop
playing around before the teacher comes? But it’s too much fun. I’d much rather
take the risk. And I always stop, eventually. Just not straight away.
The girls are more organized than we are. They always have their things, textbooks
and pencil cases, with them. And they never forget to do their homework. They
work harder and they make more effort with what they’re doing. Maybe that’s why
they do better in on the tests as well. They’re even better than us at handwriting.
I’d much rather play football if I had a choice. Or computer games. Although, I do
like doing projects that don’t go on too long. Maybe I’m not patient enough. Of
course, I’m only talking about me. There are actually a couple of boys in our class
who really seem to be interested in what we’re doing in here, I mean, the theory
and everything.
Earlier today we were working in groups composing together. It got a little bit noisy.
There were, like, two sides, the girls’ side versus the boys’ side, and everybody was
just shouting. It’s just that we like such different things. The girls don’t like the wild
stuff. I could accept some of their ideas but not all of them. When we had a vote,
some of the boys put up their hands, so I did too. Eventually the teacher had to help
us to decide which ideas to pick.
I suppose the girls are a little bit more flexible than us, though. They work together
better, and get their work done. It looks like it’s easier for them to say yes to other
people’s ideas. Maybe they are more open to different suggestions. To be honest,
124
the boys’ groups don’t work together so well. I think it’s because we’re competing
with each other. And we don’t care if we don’t finish our work. Usually, when it
starts to get out of hand, the girls try to calm us down. Like last week when we
made a bet. The girls said that they bet we can’t behave through the whole lesson.
Well, they were right. We lost.
The boys’ reflections painted a little different picture. In addition to reflecting on the
social interactions in the BoM classroom and on their own engagements that they always
were not so proud of, they also talked about their interests and likes outside the sites of
formal learning. In general, they saw girls as academically able and more organized and
hard-working than themselves.
...Like the boys in our [elementary school] class, they just want to get out and play soccer
and so... they don’t care too much whether they learn or not... and then when we have tests
and all, they don’t do so well... but the girls go, like, “Hey, I know this... it goes like this...
this is easy”... and the boys, because they haven’t been practicing, they go, like, “Help, I
don’t know this”... (Amos)
...Well, it was a bit like... like that, for example I... I kind of wanted to make the others
laugh... and they just came along. The girls then couldn’t get their good ideas through...
they just couldn’t speak out... (Amos)
Furthermore, they considered the girls generally more flexible and cooperative than
themselves; they thought this was due to competition between the boys.
...’Cause boys, well, our cooperation doesn’t work, their [the girls’] works better... Our
cooperation doesn’t work at all... (Amos)
...Girls accept easier the ideas of the other’s... (Jonas)
Like the girls, they made generalizations about girls as a unified group, but also about
themselves, and considered girls as simply having a different taste from boys.
...Well, they [the girls] have a little bit different taste... that’s why it was so difficult... they
[the girls] wanted us to be bunnies or something... that would have been fine by me, but the
others thought that it was lousy... (Emil)
...We like kind of wild stuff and they [the girls] don’t want to go along with it... (Max)
125
They reasoned that there were situations in which the girls tried to, in vain, to restrain
the boys’ behaviour. Further, the boys said that, although it perhaps was not smart, it just
was too much fun to play around. Besides, they claimed, the teachers’ feedback did not
worry them so much.
...The girls said that it might be wise to calm down a bit before I get a marking... well,
usually I do, but not just straight away... I don’t care so much if I get a marking... (Amos)
In their opinion, the girls, instead, paid far more attention to the teachers’ opinion, and
tried to convince the boys to do the same.
[The girls don’t participate in acting wild] because they might think that when the teacher
comes to the classroom... [Imitates the girls.] “Hmm... we might get a marking, so lets act
reasonable”...and so they don’t do it... (Amos)
Consequently, both the girls and boys’ reflections illuminated the social dynamics,
which seemed to direct the interactions in the BoM classroom. To me, in some respect,
the emphasis and the ambiance of their reflections differed from one to another. The girls
seemed to concentrate more on boys’ actions and talked less about themselves. Their most
prevalent feeling appeared to be resentment (with the notion thats of the boys not were
not able to fool them) about being socially excluded in some situations. Consequently, the
girls seemed to experience that their range of possibilities to act and interact socially was
limited. Therefore, it could be argued that their sense of agency was more limited, too.
The boys, on the other hand, talked more about themselves and their personal likes. They
complimented the girls’ academic efforts, but at the same time expressed that investing
in school work was not their priority. Nothing in their narrations implied that they had
experienced any limitations in terms of sense of agency. However, as illustrated in Chapter
Four, the situation was not that straightforward and twofold; some of the boys wanted
to participate in the classroom discourse actively; therefore their possibilities to act and
interact socially was, however, limited at times.
5.2 Bridging the multi-voiced social spaces
The almost overwhelming multi-voicedness of the BoM classroom has been one of the
main topics in this inquiry. Supporting the students’ negotiations of memberships and
ownership of meanings (Wenger 1998/2003/1998) when falling into gendered border work
challenged me pedagogically many times in the course of the research project. As the
teacher in the BoM classroom, I had to make choices in terms of the social norms and
126
practices, including protocol concerning leading conversation freely and making noise,
and establishing the desired limits concerning the use of physical space and mobility
during the shared activities. Hence, bridging the multiple social spaces involved everyone,
and was discussed many times in the lessons. In the stimulated recall interviews, both
the girls and the boys made efforts to come up with ideas about how to support the multivoicedness and improve cooperation in the BoM classroom:
Anna
[To Lily after watching an episode in which the cooperation was suffering:]
So, you said on the video clip that “we got to find an understanding”... how could it be done?
Lily
Well, you got to be flexible...
Ester
... And not think so much if something is ‘girls’ stuff or boys’ stuff’...
Anna
Ester
No such borders?
Yeah... the boys should also try out the games we like... cause they can’t know what they are like, since they’ve never tried them...
And in the boys’ interview:
Amos
You got to listen to the others more... and you can ask them to calm down if it gets too wild...
Jonas
We just don’t seem to notice when it gets too wild...
Anna
Whose proposals are then accepted?
Amos
Well, those who also accept the proposals of the others, who don’t just shout their own suggestions...
Anna
What if there are many proposals? How are they negotiated?
Jonas
Well, it takes good group work...
Anna
What makes it good?
Jonas
If everybody would just listen to each other and not talk over [each other]...
Anna
Are we able to pull it off here [in the BoM classroom]?
Jonas Sometimes, sometimes not...
As shown here, the students came up with a range of features, such as flexibility, openmindedness, avoidance of strict gendered categorizations, listening to the others, group
work and mutuality; in their mind, these features supported community. Hence, although
the implementation from time to time suffered from the manifestations of children’s
gendered negotiations, they seemed to have a clear understanding of what it takes to act
collectively, as a community of learners.
127
The different modes of participation and the changing social conditions in the BoM
classroom are discussed in many places in this work. Even though every lesson included
some moments of dialogue and collaboration, the situations in which the students
specifically seemed to be able to cross gender boundaries and negotiate a transformative
social space, were connected to the activities that had one thing in common: namely that
they involved some form individual creative invention. In other words, they were activities
that invited the students to draw from their personal worlds (O’Neall 2012), in that way
supporting reflexivity in learning. Thus, as Reimer (1995) suggests, music can be used to
manifest selfness. Creative music making may involve critical and on-going self-reflection
and the making of personal musical choices, thus promoting meaningful experiences in
and through music.
In the BoM classroom, many of the shared practices involved creative, collaborative
music-making in some form or extent. There were two examples in which the cooperation
was suddenly effortless; what particularly distinguished these was that they enabled
the students to engage in creative invention more individually. Hence, both instances
began with activities in which the students worked alone or in pairs, thus involving selfreflection and the making of personal musical choices, creating potentials for profound
musical experiences (Reimer 1995). The lesson then proceeded with a collective activity
in which the students were able to share with their peers something that felt personal.
They seemed to be enthusiastic when presenting their own artefacts but and also showed
interest to in the ideas of the others. This created a social space, a third space (Gutierrez
et al. 1995), for the students to make subjective contributions to a shared endeavour, thus
enabling individual and collective musical exploration both individually and collectively.
According to Gutierrez et al. (1995), it is precisely between these official and unofficial
scripts, in which a third space may occur. Moreover, Reimer (1995) suggests that such
group efforts to that create communal musical experiences may add “another dimension
to the potential profundity of the experience” (13).
The first example of such an episode was a situation in which the students had been
inventing their own rhythmic patterns by using body percussion. After first working
individually on their own patterns and body percussions, each students then shared their
pattern by teaching it to the rest of the group. Evidently, sharing their own patterns and
body percussions with their peers motivated the students, and who also seemed to enjoy
of the inventions of the others. All the students participated in the teaching and learning
intensively and the patterns were then performed together. The following transcribes the
beginning of the episode:
128
Anna
Well, who wants to start then? [Many lifted hands...]
Lily
Me! This is frog-talk... [Lily adds some croaking to her body-percussion.]
Matt
This is too funny, I just can’t continue... how do you do it?
Anna
Lily, can you show the others how to make the croak-sound? [Lily shows again her body-percussion and everybody practice along.]
Amos
I’m the next... [Amos shares his body-percussion with the others.]
Anna
And then Ester?
Ester
Well, mine goes like... [Also Ester teaches her body-percussion to the others.]
Anna
Wow... playing with the fingers sounds different than playing with a palm, doesn’t it? Matt, how about your body-percussion? [Matt starts with beat-
boxing and adds some other body-percussions to it].
Matt
This is kind of hard to perform, so please don’t make me laugh...
Anna
Great! Let’s practice. Can you show it again? [Matt’s beat-boxing requires some more practicing.]
Matt
I want to add one more thing to it... [Matt further develops his beat-box and the rest of the students keep on practicing it for a little while...]
The second example took place in a situation in which the students had been inventing
melodic ostinati, which then were used as ‘musical building blocks’ to construct miniature
compositions. This was done by playing a ‘conductor game’ in which the students, one
at the time, acted as a conductor, selecting or muting the ostinati, thus, always creating
their own version of the composition. In the next conversation, taken from an individual
stimulated-recall interview, Jonas reflects on his experiences when working with Amos
on a piano duo; the two boys, invented a four-hand piano part to be used later in group
composition and the conductor game.
Anna
Can you remember this situation?
Jonas
It was nice.
Anna
It was? You were sitting on a piano with Amos. Did you come up with your
ideas together?
Jonas
Yes, we did.
Anna
Could you tell about it?
Jonas
Well, first of all, we figured that our part should be cyclic, and that it shouldn’t be too melodic, changing all the time...
Anna
Okay, how did you come up with it then?
Jonas
Well, actually, first, Amos came up with a comping idea for me... and then I came up with his part...
Anna
So you were kind of switching... sounds like fun.
Jonas
Kind of yeah...
129
Anna
Anyway, you figured out together what would work?
Jonas
Yeah.
Anna
At that point, did you have any other ideas, such as that it should be cyclic?
Jonas
Well, just before finishing we figured that my part was too low after all, so we
switched so that I played in a higher [range] and Amos in a lower range.
Jonas’s reflections describe commitment and true cooperation when engaging in the
task with Amos. The boys negotiated the desirable musical qualities of the piano part
and even tried out different solutions when inventing their four-hand ostinato. In the
conductor game, all of the students wanted to act as conductors. They concentrated well
in the both roles, as players responding to the suggestions of the conductor, and as acting
as a conductor crafting improvised composition using the the ‘musical building blocks’
performed by their peers. The conductor -game was played until the end of the lesson, and
even ‘overtime’. It was the last shared activity in Phase One with working as everybody
together, and therefore, it was a promising ending for the first part of the research project
with its many social ups and downs. A significant factor that seemed to differentiate these
two events from the drama group ‘animal’ assignment, which had ended in difficulties (see
Chapter 4.2), was the degree of teacher guidance. In the drama assignment, where there
was less guidance, the social difficulties were greater; conversely, in the conductor game,
where there was more teacher guidance, the students experienced fewer social problems.
Hence, among these children, the teacher guidance seemed to reduce gendered border
work (see e.g. Björck 2011; Connell 2009; Thorne 1993).
As a teacher, these findings inform me about the significance of promoting reflexivity
in learning. In my inquiry, the sense of subjectivity and individual meaningfulness seemed
to operate as a vehicle of inclusion and enhance a sense of mutuality in the classroom
discourse.
130
5.3 Summary
In this chapter, I have discussed the multi-voicedness of the BoM classroom, and presented
examples in which the lessons created a social space, a third space (Gutierrez et al. 1995)
where it was possible for the students to cross gender boundaries and act as a community
of learners (Wenger 1998/2003). In such episodes, the students’ experiences that supported
reflexivity in learning were crucial. Both examples, in which the students cooperated
particularly well, also involved individual, creative invention, which allowed the students
to draw from their own personal worlds (O’Neall 2012). Hence, among these children,
opportunities to employ subjectivity seemed to promote the a sense of community and to
operate as a motivator for collective meaning-making.
The students’ reflections in the forms of my constructed narratives of ‘Emma’ and
‘Amos’ illuminate how the children were capable of making insightful observations when
reflecting on themselves as well as on the others. Further, it demonstrates that they are
and capable of showing empathy and giving credit to others. However, the emphasis and
the ambiance of the girls’ and boys’ reflections are different from each other in certain
respects. The girls expressed that their range of possibilities to act and interact socially
is limited at times. Hence, it could can therefore be argued that their sense of agency
therefore is sometimes limited. They also reflect on the student role they adopted and
compare their own behaviour to that of the boys. In the interactions of the BoM classroom,
this role shows itself in the girls’ consistent self-control. Another way to look at the girls’
characteristic restraint would of course be to interpret it as a form of student underlife
(Goffman 1961), that is, distancing oneself from the official classroom script. However, in
many instances in this study, the girls’ own reflections and their remarkably active Phase
Two participation do not support that view.
The boys, instead, do not express any views or feelings about their agency being
limited in any ways. As noted earlier, unlike the girls, their reflections also touched their
lives outside the BoM classroom. They appeared to be not too worried about their own
performance, although they do notice the girls’ academic achievements. Hence, the girls
and the boys reflected differently about themselves.
131
6 Conclusions
This ethnographic practitioner inquiry viewed children’s social interaction when learning
music in the Finnish Music School Basics of Music classroom. The aim of this study has
been to explore children’s social interaction, and, particularly, to understand how gender
becomes intertwined with the processes of negotiating learner identities and agencies when
participating in the BoM classroom activities. Viewing learning as social participation,
this study focused on the processes of negotiating memberships in the BoM classroom,
and in creating ownerships of meaning through mutual engagements in shared activities
(Wenger 1998/2003). To this end, the study sought to identify and understand the tensions
related to gender that might have hindered this participation and thus created inequalities
in learning, and to recognize situations in which gender boundaries were de-emphasized
in favour of negotiating new practices in the BoM classroom.
As common to ethnography, in this study the generation of data, the interpretation
and the theorizing have moved forward overlapping with each other (Lappalainen 2007).
My dual position has made it possible to evaluate, re-consider and adjust my own choices
and comprehension both as a practitioner and as the researcher while moving on with this
project. By analysing the data gathered by video recordings, stimulated-recall interviews
and my own teacher diaries, I was able to construct three overarching themes that reflected
the interaction and the distribution of power in the BoM classroom, and offered illuminating
insights to my research topic. The first and perhaps most salient theme was dealing with
the different modes of participation that either compromised or promoted learning and the
construction of musical agency among the children participating in BoM. In the classroom
discourse these varying modes of participation were often dealing with the access
to participation, evident in the observation data, as well as in the students’ reflections.
The second theme addressed children’s own gendered beliefs and preconceptions that
emphasized the sustainment of conventional gendered groupings, hence complicating the
interaction among the children. These beliefs and preconceptions directed particularly
the group work situations and showed as a lack of cooperation and mutuality. In addition,
they came up in the stereotypical views the girls held about boys, and the boys held about
girls, and themselves, as uniform entities. The third theme considered the gendered and
polarized student identities that operated as vehicles of exclusion when some some
students dominated the classroom interactions in the social space of underlife (Goffman
1961), evident in the observation data as well as in the stimulated-recall interviews.
132
The study illustrates how the students and the teacher, as a new community of learners,
struggled in constructing a shared learning culture in the BoM classroom, and how the
manifestations of children’s gendered negotiations and an adoption of group identities
complicated that process. In these situations the localized and collective understandings
of group masculinity and group femininity (Paechter 2006) were often directed by
gendered border work (e.g. Thorne 1993), thus emphasizing the juxtaposition between the
girls and the boys. Gendered border work (e.g. Thorne 1993) took place in three ways: in
adopting gender based learner identities, in holding gendered beliefs and preconceptions
and in falling into polarized ‘good student’ and ‘rebel student’ identities, thus driving the
processes of negotiating memberships and constructing ownership in meaning (Wenger
1998/2003). The study points out how particularly the use of student voice operated as a
legitimator when negotiating the memberships and the access to contributing to shared
meaning making. In addition, adopting gendered learner identities (Gordon 2006b) was
evident in the differences in the use of mobility, time and physical space between the male
and female students. In classroom based music learning, when it involves shared processes
of creative music making that often take place in relatively free dialogical settings with
bodily interaction, as in the BoM classroom examined here, these complications may limit
the range of possibilities to act and interact musically and thus construct agency in music.
Secondly, gendered border work was manifested in holding gendered beliefs and
preconceptions in that way shaping the localized and shared understanding of group
masculinity and group femininity in the BoM classroom. Particularly evident the
polarization was in the semi-formal learning situations that involved mutual reflection and
the making of collective judgements, such as group work situations. The lack of teacher
guidance even reinforced the polarization. When falling into gendered border work (e.g.
Thorne 1993), it seemed to be more important to maintain the groupings than to act
according to individual identities, and to make personal choices. Hence, gendered border
work operated not only between the groupings but also inside the groupings, thus driving
the individual negotiations of femininities and masculinities (Paechter 2006), as well. As
a result, negotiating what it meant to be a member of this particular BoM classroom often
took place in such a juxtaposition. This compromised the sense of community, and limited
the possibilities to engage in learning collectively. This is crucial since the sense of agency,
and gendered agency, is constructed precisely through these accumulated experiences of
legitimacy to contribute to the shared enterprises in the social situations (McNay 2004).
In the same way musical agency can be seen constructed through one’s accumulated
experiences of the range of possibilities to act and interact musically (e.g. Karlsen 2011).
Thus, the sense of membership contributes to the process of constructing ownership in
meaning, in other words to meaningful learning.
133
Finally, gendered border work directed the construction of memberships and the
ownership of meaning in a form of adopting the quite polarized ‘good student’ and
‘rebel student’ identities. Like a norm, the girls adopted an identity of a ‘good student’.
They engaged in all classroom activities focused and showed capability of recognizing
and negotiating the social rules in the BoM classroom. However, the situation was not
that straightforward. Their consistency in showing self-control and reasonable behaviour
limited their claiming of social space in the situations when some students took liberties
and dominated the classroom interactions both verbally and in terms of physical space.
Paradoxically, maintaining an identity of a ‘good student’ operated in some classroom
interactions as a gate-keeper to full membership and the access to contributing to the
collective production of meanings (Wenger 1998/2003).
Unlike the girls, the boys weren’t that consistent or unanimous in their student identity
negotiations. Some of the boys adopted a so called ‘rebel student’ identity by contesting
the classroom discursive practices in a social space of underlife (Goffman 1961). However,
their behaviour was shifting, and some of the boys did not go along with rebellious
behaviour at all. By the midway of phase two when working in the groups of girls and
boys, some of the boys started to renegotiate the classroom discursive practices and the
localized understanding of group masculinity (Paechter 2006) in the BoM classroom.
In that way, importantly, the tensions caused by some students by maintaining underlife,
contributed in creating a social space for transformation and a new classroom culture.
The findings suggest, that in a mixed environment, the practices that truly supported
reflexivity and the processes of negotiating personal meanings de-emphasized gendered
groupings among the children. In the BoM classroom these practices involved individual
creative activities, such as inventing own rhythmic patterns or compositions which allowed
the students to draw from their own personal worlds (O’Neall 2012). In these situations
the students were able to cross the gender boundaries and work towards a community of
learners. All in all, the study, however, shows how both the girls and the boys expressed
experiences of ambivalence when balancing between the group identities, their individual
needs and the cultural demands of what being a ‘proper girl’ or a ‘proper boy’ implied in
this particular context.
So, what does this tell us about the ambivalent nature of children’s gendered
negotiations in music education? In the context of teaching Basics of Music the study
informs of the importance of promoting reflexivity and social transformation in learning.
A teacher needs to consider how the contents of the course, selected teaching practices
and the social classroom environments can meet the needs of the students, and create a
space for democratic learning (Gould 2007) to take place. Democracy in learning, the
134
way it is understood in this inquiry, means an equal access to educational and musical
resources, and to power when participating in the classroom discourse (ibid.). Hence,
equal opportunities to construct memberships and to contribute to shared meaning making
(Wenger 1998/2003). In the BoM classroom, in order to promote such processes, the
practices involved creative and collaborative music making in varying forms. As the study
indicates, however, this alone does not ensure an equitable outcome. Instead, the inherent
multi-voicedness (Gutierrez et al. 1995) of any classroom challenges the community of
learners and requires thus constant and sensible negotiation in order to cross the social
boundaries, such as gender. For students this means practicing of what it takes to act
and interact collectively, being sensitive to the needs of others and respecting everyone’s
access to participation. For a teacher, promoting gender sensitivity means an on-going
reflecting on one’s own attitudes related to gender, and awareness of the messages one
sends to the students, but also reacting frankly to the situations in which the students need
guidance. This may not always be an easy task but requires tolerance for conflicts and
uncertainties, and reacting to the changing phases and needs in students’ lives, such as
age-related phase of gendered border work. The ambivalence of gender is necessarily not
just about the stereotypes, not something that has to be fixed but rather something that has
to be paid attention to and treated in educational contexts in order to enhance participation
and equality in music education.
135
7 Discussion
Although the context of this study is an extra-curricular music school, the phenomena
that are discussed are valid in any music classroom or educational context in which
children learn music in a group. In the preceding chapters, I have drawn on my own
experiences during this study. In this final chapter, I will revisit my contextual, theoretical
and methodological lenses, and explore how the themes and findings presented in my
study interrelate and interact in the social life of a children’s music classroom. Moreover,
I will revisit my research questions from the perspectives of the two main theoretical
frameworks, namely, socio-cultural learning theory and poststructuralist gender theories.
Since my study is a practitioner inquiry, I will also consider my inquiry’s implications for
practitioner practice.
7.1 Revisiting the community of practice
This inquiry has viewed the social life of a music classroom of 9-year old children,
participating in the classroom discourse of the Finnish Music School ‘Basics of Music’
(BoM) course. In classroom discourse, I also included the artefacts, experiences and
practices shared by this local community of learners (Wenger 1998/2003; Gutierrez et
al. 1995). I adopted a sociocultural perspective, which understands social participation
as inherent to learning. My inquiry examined children’s social participation in the BoM
classroom by viewing the processes of forming memberships, and gaining ownership
of meaning (Wenger 1998/2003). Throughout this inquiry, the community of practice
is defined as a pedagogical environment characterized by its participants’ mutual
engagement, joint enterprises and shared repertoire (Wenger 1998/2003). Further, this
inquiry illustrated how the BoM classroom strove towards becoming a community of
practice.
The Forming of memberships in the BoM classroom
As discussed above, the BoM classroom was an entirely new community of learners that
had only just started to negotiate shared norms and practices. Moreover, the BoM classroom
likely differed from a regular school classroom by including dialogue and classroom
practices typical to creative processes. Hence, it was only expected that the students
needed some time to adjust to the social conditions of the BoM classroom. As discussed
136
in Chapter 3.5, in participation metaphor, people must learn the shared norms, values and
practices of each community they enter (Yamakawa, Forman & Ansell 2005, 179). In the
BoM classroom, I, as the teacher, was the one who facilitated the classroom practices
and social norms according to my own ideals of a collaborative learning environment.
Evidently, not all of the students shared my ideals. Instead, in the social space of underlife
(Goffman 1961), some of the boys created their own practices with rebellious behaviours
in order to distance themselves from the normative social practices in the BoM classroom.
However, by causing interruptions, they limited the participation (Wenger 1998/2003) of
those students who wanted to actively engage in the classroom practices actively, and,
therefore, complicated the formation of memberships in this classroom.
In the children’s own reflections, the girls especially expressed their resentment
about being marginalized in the course of the classroom interactions. Their resentment
was particularly evident in terms of the use of student voice. At times, they sensed that
their range of possibilities to act and interact socially – thus, their sense of agency – was
limited. In classroom interactions, this showed, for instance, as consistent self-control.
However, their adoption of, so-called, ‘good student’ behaviours was ambiguous for two
reasons. First, it kept them from claiming for their social space in the situations in which
some other students dominated the classroom interactions. Secondly, in their efforts to
negotiate memberships when engaging in classroom discursive practices, they also ended
up performing quasi-teacher roles by ‘keeping an eye on’ the boys. This monitoring
caused tensions among the children and complicated how they formed memberships and
acted as a community of learners. Instead, in the Phase Two classroom interactions, the
girls actively collaborated as legitimate members of the BoM classroom. Hence, forming
memberships was easier for the girls in the girls-only classroom setting.
Despite adopting ‘rebellious student’ identities in their social space of underlife
(ibid.), the boys started to renegotiate their engagement levels and their memberships
when engaging participating in classroom discursive practices. The change in the boys’
behaviour, however – that started in Phase One (working in co-ed setting) and continued in
Phase Two (working in single-gender settings) – took place gradually. It was an exception
that, in Phase One, the boys had a tendency to emphasize the polarization between the
girls and the boys; this was evident, for instance, in the divided-group work, and in the
whole-group situations that involved bodily interaction. Only Emil was consistent in his
agency, cooperating with everybody. In that way, Emil could be regarded as having acted
as a social broker (Wenger 2009), trying to find mutual understanding (Gutierrez et al.
1995) and to cross gender boundaries in order to support the construction of memberships
in the BoM classroom.
137
However, in this particular BoM classroom, generally speaking, undoing stereotypical
gendered behaviours was challenging for the children. Their struggles show how the
negotiation of learner identities is not always a reflexive processes, but as discussed above,
often can be ruled by gendered habits based on earlier individual experiences and social
and cultural gendered expectations.
The Gaining of ownership in the BoM classroom
In the classroom activities, the complications in the forming of memberships were evident
as a lack of mutuality and collaboration among the children. When some of the students
dominated classroom activities with their rebellious behaviours, access to contributing to
the joint enterprises was limited for the others. Hence, the different modes of participation
operated as a source of social power, either promoting or compromising the processes
of shared meaning negotiation and the gaining of ownership (Wenger 1998/2003). In
many ways, these implications are confirmed in the observation data and the students’
own reflections. For instance, in the stimulated-recall interviews, the girls reflected about
difficulties learning in Phase One because of the disturbances. Again, the use of student
voice particularly operated as a strong legitimator (Arnot 2007), regulating the access to
participation and the gaining of an ownership of meaning (see Table 3 in Chapter 4.1.1).
The BoM classroom interactions reveal how the negotiation of the shared norms
and practices was on-going and shifting. Hence, the same lesson could involve times
of collaboration and times of social conflict. As discussed in Chapter 5.2, situations
in which the students particularly seemed to be able to cross social boundaries and
negotiate a transformative social space were connected to the activities that involved
some form of individual creative invention. Evidently, the experiences of reflexivity – that
is, incorporating personal meaningfulness and a sense of ownership – were crucial for
the efforts to bridge the multi-voiced social spaces (Gutierrez et al. 1995). Despite these
many social challenges, this study also demonstrated how the children practiced agency
in collaboration with each other in various musical situations, for instance, playing the
conductor game; inventing four-hand piano part with a peer; inventing a compositional
idea in order to inspire everybody participating; or collaboratively solving a rhythmic
dictation with a group of peers. These instances inform us about the significance of
having access in negotiating both personal and collective meanings when participating in
the classroom discourse (Wenger 1998/2003; Gutierrez et al. 1995). The findings of this
inquiry indicate that it is precisely this interplay of private and public meaning-making
(see chapter 1.2), involving critical self-reflection and collective exploration, which seems
to make a difference.
138
Rethinking the Finnish BoM classroom as an exploratory space
A pedagogical stance that holds the student’s experience as a reference point is not new,
but introduced over a hundred years ago by John Dewey (2008/1916) in his laboratory
school. Dewey understood learning as, above all, experimenting with what the world is
like (Dewey MWs; Väkevä 2013). In the BoM classroom, such an attitude was nurtured by
hands-on, workshop-oriented music-making in many forms, including musical invention.
This environment aimed at offering opportunities for the students not simply to reproduce,
but also to renew musical culture, and to seek their own voice in it (Ojala & Väkevä 2013;
see also Kuoppamäki 2013).
Philosophically, the engagement in the processes of creative exploration with the
students, for instance, when improvising or composing in a group, means adjusting to
uncertainties, such as a sense of process, and learning outcomes that are not always
measurable in conventional ways. Thus, a BoM classroom may operate as a pedagogical
space for practicing how to deal with feelings of ambivalence and unpredictability, and
how to construct strategies in order to navigate the complexity of learning (O’Neall 2012,
117; Partti et al. 2013). Moreover, the BoM classroom can invite students to ambiguity,
showing them that for some problems there can be many good solutions (Kuoppamäki
2010; 2013). However, not all teachers – teaching in various fields of music education,
including extra-curricular music schools and general music education – are comfortable
engaging with their students in such pedagogical negotiations, which enable creative
pondering and making musical choices when learning, or include musical invention in
some form. For instance, the recent Finnish national assessment of learning outcomes
in the subject of music (Juntunen 2011) shows that half of music teachers never, or only
occasionally, involve musical invention in their lower secondary-school music teaching
(Juntunen et al. 2014). Thus, almost half of the lower secondary school students have
no experiences of creative music-making, such as arranging, improvising or composing
music (Juntunen 2011, 55). Nevertheless, if one of the aims of schooling is to nurture
students’ cultural participation, creative thinking and activities, as directed by the Finnish
National Core Curriculum (FNCC 2004), then every student should have opportunities to
participate in processes of creative invention, thus, having access to cultural authorship
and agency (Ojala & Väkevä 2013; see also Kuoppamäki 2013).
As this study shows, facilitating creative exploration may not always be enough. A
learning environment in which the students can feel safe and confident to experiment, take
risks, ask questions, make choices and reflect with each other can only rest on a sense of
mutuality, respect and equal access to contributing to the shared enterprises. Generating
and fostering this kind of learning environment is a responsibility of the BoM teacher.
139
Hence, in order to operate as an exploratory space, a BoM classroom as a community of
learners needs to negotiate social conditions in order to make certain conditions possible,
including acting and interacting both as an individual, that is, expressing personal views
and feelings, and also as a member of a community, entailing being sensitive to the
views and needs of others. In some classrooms, such conditions may come naturally; in
others, like in this study’s BoM classroom, these conditions require on-going efforts and
negotiation of shared practices and norms. However, by investing in social interaction
and communication skills of the students, the natural multi-voicedness of any classroom
(Gutierrez et al. 1995) can become a valuable learning asset, for instance, by offering
potentials for mutual reflection with one another and, above all, opportunities for learning
from the peers.
Despite the explicit intentions, building such a dialogical and cooperative learning
environment is not always an easy task for a teacher. A teacher may have normative
expectations about the students, and about the teaching contents and practices that s/
he facilitates, for instance, by assuming that creative practices, as such, always produce
meaningful learning experiences among the students. When conducting this study, I ran
into situations in which some of the students did not respond in the way that I had expected
when I planned the activities. Evidently, my own conceptions of the attractiveness of some
particular classroom activities did not always correspond to the views of the students.
Consequently, sometimes the student’s participation and the gaining of ownership may
unintentionally suffer from a teacher’s normative expectations about the possible outcomes
or artefacts. As discussed above, this might be crucial because the findings of this study
indicate that, in the BoM classroom in particular, the sense of subjectivity and personal
meaningfulness operated as a means for the students to cross social boundaries and work
towards becoming a community of learners. Hence, promoting reflexivity in learning by
connecting the lesson contents to the students’ personal lives and musical activities outside
the sites of formal music education is essential for the construction of agency. Students’
participation in changing musical arenas, including individually or in a group, and in
formal or informal settings, builds webs of learning, importantly giving them experiences
of approaching music from different angles (e.g. Partti et al. 2013).
To summarize, promoting the BoM classroom as an exploratory space means
understanding learning itself as a socially organized, creative and reflexive process –
learning is becoming (O’Neall 2012) rather than being, and creates social transformation.
In this kind of pedagogical space, learning is not simply about addressing topics and
questions that only offer clear-cut, ‘right or wrong’ answers, but rather about encouraging
the students to explore and question given conceptions and beliefs (Kuoppamäki 2010).
Nurturing such an organic, flexible attitude towards learning requires a social environment
140
in which students feel confident and safe to express their own views and feelings, an
environment based on mutual respect and openness. In order to accomplish creating this
environment, certain necessary intersecting social conditions must be met, including
recognizing and caring for, as needed, gender-related issues.
7.2 Revisiting performative gender
My inquiry viewed a children’s music-classroom and considered how gender intertwines
with the processes of constructing learner identities (Gordon 2006a) and musical
agency (e.g. Karlsen 2011). More precisely, I examined in my music classroom how the
localized femininity and the masculinity practices (Paechter 2006) were negotiated, and
how gendered border work (e.g. Thorne 1993) interfered with processes of constructing
memberships and ownership of meaning (Wenger 1998/2003).
The Forming of memberships in the BoM classroom
This inquiry adopted the view that children do not passively become socialized into
gender categories, but that they construct their own gender agency by stepping in and out
of gender categorizations in the form of gendered border work (e.g. Thorne 1993; Connell
2009). From this position, gender was understood as performative and a social, lived
relation; as fluid and processual rather than congealed and fixed (e.g. Butler 1990/1999;
McNay 2004; Connell 2002; 2009). For children, gendered border work (e.g. Thorne 1993)
is a way to experiment with their identity, playing and testing the potentials and limits of
gender. Hence, as discussed above, gendered border work is important per se, and as such,
a natural part of maturation. However, as this study’s classroom interactions illuminated,
children in the social life of a classroom also use gender as a tool and an indicator to
designate who is included in, and who is left out of the shared activities (Kampmann in
Bredesen 2004). Hence, gender also operates as a source of social power, in this way,
directing the interactions among the students participating in the classroom discourse. As
Connell (2009) insightfully points out, gender difference is not something that naturally
exists, but rather something that “must be made to happen” (p. 15). Consequently, it can
also be unmade, revised, and made less important (p. 15), as Emil’s behaviour showed.
In my inquiry, I also viewed the BoM community of practice as locally-negotiated
femininity and masculinity practices (Paechter 2006). In this particular BoM classroom,
the processes of negotiating memberships were often complicated by gendered border
work (e.g. Thorne). Gendered border work (ibid.) was notably evident in children: adopting
141
gender-based learner identities; holding gendered beliefs and preconceptions; and
adopting, so-called, ‘good student’ and ‘rebel student’ identities. In my BoM classroom,
when students fell into gendered border work (ibid.), the negotiations were sometimes
complicated, causing tensions in the social space of underlife (Goffman 1961) and
driving the children to negotiate femininity and masculinity practices (Paechter 2006)
in juxtaposition to one another. These localized and collective understandings of group
femininity and group masculinity (ibid.) were particularly evident when the children
adopted the quite polarized ‘good student’ and ‘rebel student’ identities. In the situations
in which some of the boys repeatedly performed rebellious behaviours, the girls, instead,
consistently showed self-control by not participating in the boys’ activities. In these
situations, the girls often positioned themselves as passive viewers limiting their potentials
to act as full members of the BoM classroom community.
The rapid and obvious change in the girls’ femininity practice and the classroom
discourse in Phase Two, when the girls and boys were working in the separate groups,
illustrates well the dynamics of gendered border work in this particular BoM classroom.
As discussed above, the girls’ range of possibilities to practice their agency was now wider,
showing that in this new situation they were confident and active learners. In the boys’
group, instead, the change that already had started in Phase One took place slowly and
gradually when the boys themselves started to renegotiate the norms and practices in their
BoM classroom. In this way, the tensions that occurred in the social space of underlife
(Goffman 1961) generated a new transformative social space, a third space (Gutierrez
et al. 1995), in which the renegotiation of the boys’ localized understandings of their
masculinity practice was possible. This social change in the boys’ classroom discourse
also widened their range of possibilities to engage in the processes of learning and to act
and interact socially as legitimate members of their BoM community of practice.
In order to be able to support children in their gender negotiations and in the processes
of constructing memberships in a classroom community, a teacher needs to be able to
see beyond these stereotypical gender performances, and guide the students towards
negotiating their identities in a sensitive and constructive way, both as individuals and
collectively.
The Gaining of ownership in the BoM classroom
Above, I discussed how, due to gendered border work, masculinity and femininity practices
were often negotiated in juxtaposition to one another in the BoM classroom. Additionally,
among these particular children, gendered border work became evident when they adopted
142
gender-based learner identities (Gordon 2006a) that were manifested in the differences of
the use of student voice, mobility, time and space between the girls and boys. Particularly
the use of student voice operated as a legitimator (Arnot 2007) in the classroom discourse,
compromising some students’ engagement in the shared processes of negotiating
ownership of meaning (Wenger 1998/2003), and therefore, causing inequalities in learning
(see Table 3 in Chapter 4.1.1). These complications particularly limited the girls’ gendered
agency (McNay 2004), that is, through their experiences to accumulate gender knowledge
when negotiating the potentials and limits of acting and interacting socially within the
classroom discourse.
However, the girls were not the only ones to have their experiences, including their
range of possibilities to act and interact, limited. All along, the boys, particularly Emil,
protested about the social disturbances that some of the boys created in their social space
of underlife (Goffman 1961). Unlike the girls, however, he repeatedly brought up the
issue of the interruptions, and called for a more focused environment. In this sense, his
agency differed from that of the girls. Gradually, some other boys joined Emil in his call
to improve the learning environment, and the boys started to renegotiate the problematic
social conditions that compromised their access to the shared processes of meaningmaking.
In addition, gendered border work was manifested in the students’ adoption of
gendered beliefs and pre-conceptions, evident particularly in the group-work situations
in which the maintaining gendered groupings and acting according to the group identities
were more important than making of individual choices. When the access to the shared
activities and meaning negotiation was compromised, this polarization of individuals and
the group hindered participation, reflexivity in learning and the construction of ownership.
In their reflections during the stimulated-recall interviews, the children’s gendered beliefs
and preconceptions concerning ‘the other side’, as well as about themselves, came up
when discussing the ‘girls’ and ‘boys’ (as uniform groups) in relation to, for instance, their
school achievement, personalities or likes.
Understanding the music classroom as a gender-sensitive space
Music teachers might not consider that gender issues are their concern. In order to engage
in gender and equality negotiations with students in the classroom discourse, a teacher must
take children seriously as gendered agents. This means, for instance, that a teacher does
not try to anticipate or direct students’ conceptions of gender (Bredesen 2004). Instead,
students could be given opportunities to consider gender and equality issues in relation to
143
their own reality, thus, avoiding normative perceptions of what gender or equality is, or
what it should be (ibid.). In my BoM classroom, when students fell into gendered border
work (e.g. Thorne 1993), these negotiations were sometimes complicated, causing tensions
in the social space of underlife (Goffman 1961) and driving the children to act out polarized
femininity and masculinity practices. In gendered border work situations, a teacher’s
guidance might reinforce students’ confidences, causing them to contest stereotypical
meanings of gender, cross conventional gendered borderlines, and tolerate diversity and
various ways of knowing and being within a community of learners. Thus, if the aim of
schooling is to promote a sense of community and cooperative learning, gender issues,
just like other social issues, need to be recognized and treated explicitly and openly in the
classroom discourse. Consequently, participation relies on mutual respect, communication
and shared understanding of what it means to act and interact collectively, so that everyone
involved has equal access to contributing to the shared processes of meaning-making and
learning (Wenger 1998/2003).
From a teacher’s point of view, promoting the music classroom as a gender-sensitive
space, calls for on-going evaluation of one’s own attitudes, expectations and practices.
Despite the condition that they hold themselves to be sensitive to children’s gender issues,
adults often unconsciously reinforce stereotypical conceptions of gender with their own
behaviour (e.g. Bredesen 2004). Hence, a teacher needs to critically consider his or her
own messages in order to avoid reinforcing stereotypical categorizations, and be able to
encounter children as they really are, beyond normative groupings.
In my inquiry, I first viewed the social interaction of my 9-year-old students in coed, and then in single-gender environments. I chose to do so for practical, pragmatic
reasons, because the social phenomenon that I was particularly interested in, children’s
gendered border work (e.g. Thorne), is socially played out in a binary position. Adopting a
performative view on gender (e.g. Butler 1990/1999; Connell, 2002, 2009) does not undo
the socially-constructed dichotomy of children’s gendered negotiations. The possibility
to view children interacting in two different settings demonstrated how, when entering
a learning space, a child’s sense of agency is interrelated with the classroom’s social
conditions. As a result, particularly the girls’ behaviour, in particular, significantly differed
from one setting to another. Moreover, my research design illuminated how gendered
border work (e.g. Thorne) and a shared understanding of the localized group femininity
and masculinity (Paechter 2006) directed the individual student’s negotiations. Usually,
teachers do not have this kind multi-setting vantage point (that is, the different settings of
Phases One and Two), but have to make judgements without any intimate knowledge of
their students or the causes behind their students’ social behaviour. For instance, observing
the girls in the Phase One BoM classroom (in co-ed setting) would have given only a
144
limited picture of their agency as learners. In Phase One, due to gendered border work
(e.g. Thorne), the girls adopted learner identities that limited their claiming of social space
in terms of use of student voice, mobility, time and physical space (Gordon 2006a), thus
hindering their access to the mutual processes of meaning negotiation (Wenger 1998/2003)
and their construction of an ownership in learning. In Phase Two (when working in a
girls-only group), they instead showed remarkable agency when engaging in classroom
discursive practices. Hence, in order to be able to act as a ‘culturally responsive teacher’
(Villegas & Lucas 2002), it is essentially critical that teachers are careful when making
any generalizing or normative judgements about their students that are based on gender
or other social dimensions in order that they avoid making stereotypical assumptions or
groupings.
My inquiry focused on viewing the social aspects of gender in a specific children’s music
classroom by examining the ways that gender is negotiated through musical participation
and performed in the classroom discourse. To this end, my initial motive was to better
understand children’s gendered interactions in order to better promote collaborative
learning in music (Wenger 1998/2003). However, music as a domain holds many gendered
contradictions. For instance, while the musical canon is largely considered as male, music
itself is most often related to feminine practice (McGregor & Mills 2006). Consequently,
a large body of studies on music classrooms (Green 1997; Abramo 2011; Armstrong 2011;
Björck 2011) illustrated a number of attitudes about the gender appropriateness of musical
practices related to, for example, music technology, rock-band or composition as musical
practices that largely still seem to be valid in today’s music classrooms. These gendered
attitudes in music education would require further research. Moreover, my inquiry views
primary school-aged children’s behaviour and an age-related social phenomenon of
gendered border work. However, the ways that adolescents negotiate gender in a music
classroom context has not yet been studied.
In a music classroom, teachers can contest stereotyped attitudes, for instance, by
offering to all students the same instrument choices, musical activities and repertoires
regardless of their gender. Further, teachers can discuss with the students the role models
and gendered meanings presented in textbooks, song lyrics and musical media, etc. Hence,
we can conclude that a teacher having gender sensitivity means maintaining openness
about, reacting to, negotiating and treating the social issues related to gender together with
the students in the social life of a classroom, as lived relations.
145
7.3 Revisiting the inquiry as stance – music educator as a change- agent
When conducting this study, I have understood ‘inquiry’ as an on-going stance (CochranSmith & Lytle 2009). By taking the position of a practitioner-researcher, my aim has
been to problematize current arrangements in my own local BoM community of practice
(ibid.). I wanted to gain a broader and deeper understanding of the dynamics of children’s
gendered negotiations in order to better promote the social conditions that would enable
my students to engage in creative and collaborative learning as a community of learners
(Wenger 1998/2003). Hence, the study has examined my own practice in order to
generate knowledge towards that end, and to rethink how knowledge and practice can be
constructed, evaluated and used through a “critical reflection on the intersection of the
two” (Cochran-Smith & Lytle 2009, 42).
The notion of a BoM classroom, or any music classroom, as an exploratory and
socially-sensitive space that promotes transformative learning insists on turning our
attention to the music educator. In educational literature, a practitioner who is looking for
improvement in her or his own pedagogical environment sees an educational site as a unit
of change. Further, the literature regards a practitioner, who possesses skills to address
problems and has a sense of ownership of these problems, as a ‘change agent’ (e.g. Villegas
& Lucas 2002; Lukacs 2012). This inquiry embodies my efforts to take an active stance as
a practitioner in my own music classroom. By experimenting with different pedagogical
solutions in an on-going inquiry, I have aimed to gain as multifaceted a knowledge as
possible of the social phenomenon in which I was interested – the dynamics of gendered
border work (e.g. Thorne 1993) in children’s social interaction in classroom-based music
learning.
In an effort to seek constructive change, my inquiry has dealt with the social factors
that seemed to compromise collaboration among children, and has seeked to improve the
social conditions of my own music classroom. Ideally, I envisioned my classroom as a
creative-laboratory site for collaborative musical exploration to take place, and a social
intersection among the various operations of the music school, where students could share
their interests and experiences in and through music. However, due to the social challenges
discussed throughout this inquiry, at times this seemed to be difficult to accomplish. While
saying this, though, I should emphasize that, having practiced as a teacher for many years,
these social conditions naturally vary from one classroom to another. In some classrooms,
effective collaboration occurs quite naturally; in other classrooms, it requires on-going
practice. Nevertheless, I felt that a better understanding of how gendered border work
146
(Thorne 1993) interrelates and interacts with the construction of learner identities and
musical agency would allow me to better support the learning and social transformation
of my students.
Although change is something that cannot be designed but that has to be negotiated, a
teacher can promote change by designing profitable classroom environments for change to
take place. In the multi-voiced social life of a classroom, competing discourses may need
a teacher’s guidance in order to construct effective dialogue and potentials for third- space
and transformative learning (Gutierrez et al. 1995). As the boys’ negotiations in my BoM
classroom demonstrate, tensions can be transformed into positive responses, bridging the
multiple and varied classroom social spaces (ibid.). Thus, in the social space of underlife
(Goffman 1961), conflicts can operate as a drive for constructing new learning cultures
and for creating opportunities for social change (Gutierrez et al, 1995). However, when
not treated in pedagogical practices, student underlife only sustains traditional classroom
power relations, in this way, hindering the potentials for social transformation among the
students (ibid.). For a teacher to react to the needs for change sometimes entails contesting
educational conventions, leaping into the unknown and experimenting and exploring with
different solutions, as in my study.
As also Juntunen et al. (2013) have argued, considering the music educator as a
change-agent once again places the emphasis on the social relationships established in
musical situations and on the construction of the individual and collective identities when
engaging in music-making with others. In order to facilitate pedagogical environments
that support transformative musical engagement, a teacher must envision how music and
music education can be a part of student life and a resource for student empowerment and
growth (Väkevä 2013). In that way, a teacher strives beyond what already is, to what can
be. Then, acts of music-making are not “merely instruments for learning to experience
an already existing world, [but] potentially they themselves involve satisfaction and
enjoyment and the possibility of change” (Westerlund 2008, 82; see also Juntunen et al.
2013). Nurturing in students an attitude of exploration may encourage the students in future
and changing musical arenas, to step into something that is new and yet unexplored – also
for the teacher her- or himself. This different kind of teacher role calls for understanding a
music educator’s work, not as primarily distributing musical knowledge and skills, but as
facilitating potentials for experimenting and exploring in and through music. Moreover, it
calls for stepping down from being in an expert position, to a position in which a teacher is
rather a more experienced agent, willing to engage in learning with the students.
147
7.4 The Trustworthiness of my inquiry – issues of validity
When assessing the trustworthiness of qualitative research, educational literature provides
a number of criteria and checklists to measure rigour (e.g. Patton 2003). As my inquiry
belongs to the realm of practitioner work that aims at responding to the pedagogical
challenges and transformation of practices, I will next consider questions of validity in a
criteria framework developed particularly for practitioner research, that: are democratic;
relate to process and outcome; and have catalytic and dialogic validity (Cochran-Smith &
Lytle 2009).
In this inquiry, I have shared episodes of a social life from one particular music
classroom. When I first started to plan my inquiry, one of my starting points was that
I wanted to give voice to the children themselves. Hence, my inquiry has observed
the happenings in the BoM classroom and discussed the experiences related to those
happenings from two perspectives: the students’ perspective and mine, as their teacher.
Including children as the participants, made me, throughout this inquiry, reconsider my
position as a practitioner-researcher and questions of power. In an attempt to recognize
my responsibility, as the one who reports the social events, ambiances and the children’s
reflections as well as my own experiences, and to reach “democratic validity” (CochranSmith & Lytle 2009), I have tried to honour every participants’ voice and viewpoints as
experienced and lived, and to report on my inquiry in a manner that is as rich and multivoiced as possible.
In the realm of practitioner research, resolving the problems to be addressed can be
evaluated as outcome validity (Cochran-Smith & Lytle 2009). When assessing the outcome
validity of my inquiry, three aspects particularly arise. First, the aim of my inquiry was
to gain knowledge of a social phenomenon that I found problematic in my own practice,
and to further develop that practice. Hence, in addition to documenting classroom practice
and student learning from an insider perspective, I also documented my own questions,
challenges, interpretative frameworks and changes of views over time (Cochran-Smith &
Lytle 2009). Therefore, in common with all qualitative-research inquiries, my findings
are partial, situational and contextual (Leavy 2009) because I discuss the social life of
one particular music classroom as it appeared during the time of the study. Secondly,
I also viewed the social life of the BoM classroom as locally-negotiated femininity
and masculinity practices (Paechter 2006) and suggested what being a ‘girl’ or a ‘boy’
implied in this particular classroom community. Understanding gender as a fluid, multidimensional and performative social construction insists on viewing children’s gendered
performances also as a situational and on-going process. And finally, in my inquiry, I have
regarded research as an active stance and a continuum rather than an effort to find fixed
148
answers to a set of questions. Therefore, outcome validity must be evaluated according to
this perspective (Rikandi 2012). Rather than evaluating outcome validity by considering
resolutions to addressed problems, I viewed it by considering to what extent my inquiry
was able to make the problems that it aimed to address relevant to music education (ibid.).
Although gender has been studied widely in music education, the dynamics of children’s
gendered border work, including the ways it interrelates, interacts and interferes with the
construction of learner identities, musical agency and learning, has not been studied in
the music classroom context. Therefore, in assessing outcome validity, my inquiry has
succeeded in contributing to the current discussions in music education.
A description of the use of adequate and appropriate research methods and inquiry
processes is presented in Chapter Two. However, as part of my evaluation of process validity
(Cochran-Smith & Lytle 2009), I would like to discuss one particular methodological
choice. As discussed earlier, I chose multi-methodological lenses and understood inquiry
and acting as a practitioner-researcher as an on-going, active stance. In my research
design, I have implemented this attitude by experimenting and exploring with different
pedagogical solutions in order to gain as multifaceted a knowledge about my research
topic as possible. Hence, although unorthodox in comparison to traditional forms of
ethnography, my data collection was carried out in two phases (one phase where students
worked in a single, mixed-gender group, and a second phase with students working in
two single-gender groups). I support this choice by claiming that my ability to view the
classroom discourse and the same children in two different settings, made it possible for
me to recognize aspects of my data that I would not have been able to see otherwise.
Particularly, when trying to understand the dynamics of gendered border work in the
negotiations of localized femininity and masculinity practices, this two-phase process
gave an invaluable perspective.
When conducting this inquiry, I engaged in critical and reflective discussions with
peers in various ways to achieve dialogic validity (Cochran-Smith & Lytle 2009). First,
I engaged in pedagogy conversations with my colleagues in the music school where I
was practicing. These conversations often addressed the challenging issues of my study.
Some of my colleagues also read parts of my work during the different stages of the
inquiry process. Secondly, I regularly discussed my work with peers and teachers in
doctoral seminars, and also occasionally with visiting professors. These discussions
were fundamental throughout my inquiry process. Thirdly, I participated in data viewing
sessions in the faculty of Educational Sciences at the University of Helsinki in order to
discuss portions of my data with doctoral students and professors outside of my own
university. These dialogues were a valuable supplement, bringing new perspectives to my
inquiry process.
149
In assessing how my inquiry deepened the understanding of all participants, that is,
the catalytic validity (Cochran-Smith & Lytle 2009) of my work, I first viewed it from
the student’s viewpoint. Part of my data collection included stimulated-recall interview
sessions with the children. The reason for choosing this method was to give voice to the
children themselves, and provide opportunities for them to reflect on their own learning
during the process. These sessions took place both individually and in a peer group, thus
offering potentials for collaborative reflections and changes in opinions. Throughout the
inquiry process, the children’s capacity for self-reflection, as well as their reflections on
the other students, continued to impress me. As for myself, taking a stance of inquiry has
been a long and nuanced process that has influenced my pedagogical thinking in many
ways that I did not foresee at the beginning. This study has broadened and deepened my
understanding of the complex issues of gender and the dynamics of children’s gendered
negotiations, as well as the potential implications that these issues and dynamics have for
classroom-based music learning. Moreover, it has helped me to detect my own normative
expectations that I have held as a practitioner when teaching and engaging in musical
exploration with my students. Most importantly, my inquiry has inspired me to continue
asking questions, to reassess and revitalize my own practices as a teacher, and to take a
stance as an inquiring practitioner.
150
7.5 Closing words
My inquiry takes a perspective on gender that contributes to the understanding of the
dynamics of children’s gendered negotiations in classroom-based music learning. When
conducting my inquiry, I observed that gender, as a research topic, seems to be emotive;
gender as a concept is highly contested and people often tend to have strong opinions about
it. I also came to understand that, as any complex issue, gender has many overlapping
discourses that often intertwine and sometimes become entangled in people’s minds. For
instance, talking about children’s gender-related identity negotiations as a natural part of
the maturation process is not the same as talking about gender equality between adults.
The difficulty with such great misconceptions, is that they may prevent educators and
policy makers from seeing the significance of gender in children’s everyday social lives
and, thus, also in the social spaces of learning. Pretending that gender issues do not exist
in schools does not help children learn to negotiate gender sensitively. In order for future
music educators to be able to deal with the gender issues in the various sites of music
learning, it is essential that music-teacher education programs include gender studies.
Moreover, music theory pedagogy would benefit from taking part in the wider education
conversations, and being more aware of diverse social perspectives. Although my study
has experimented with such a pedagogical solution, I am not promoting gender divisions
in the classroom, as such. I am promoting that, when they observe problems, teachers
respond by trying different solutions to those problems. Taking into account the changing
needs of students and treating social issues, like gender issues, when they arise is vital
when striving towards reflexive and transformative learning. Music education that offers
equal opportunities; encourages collaboration with others; promotes creativity and a sense
of agency; and provides tools for cultural participation can be, in a pragmatist Deweyan
sense, a source of a good life.
151
152
References
Abramo, J. M. 2011. Queering informal pedagogy: Sexuality and popular music in
school. Music Education Research 13 (4), 465-477.
Adler, A. & Harrison,S. 2004. Swinging back the gender pendulum: Addressing boys’
needs in music education research and practice. In L. R. Bartel (ed.) Questioning the
music education paradigm. Waterloo, ON: Canadian Music Educators’ Association,
270-289.
Ali, S. 2003. “To be a girl”: culture and class in schools.
Gender and Education 15 (3), 269-283.
Anttila, A., Ojanen, K., Saarikoski, H. & Timonen, S. 2011. Tyttöjen juttuja.
Tyttökulttuurin monimuotoiset tilat. [Girls’ stuff. Girl culture’s diverse spaces]
In K. Ojanen, H. Mulari and S. Aaltonen (eds.) Entäs tytöt. [What about the girls]
Tampere: Vastapaino, 135-172.
Anttila, E.1996. Dance education in theory and practice. Licentiate’s Thesis,
University of Helsinki.
Anttila, E. 2003. A Dream Journey to the Unknown: Searching Dialogue in Dance
Education. Acta Scenica 14. Helsinki: Theatre Academy.
Archer, L. 2006. Masculinities, femininities and resistance to participation in postcompulsory education. In C. Leathwood and B. Francis (eds.) Gender and Lifelong
Learning. London: Routledge, 70-82.
Armstrong, V. 2011. Technology and the gendering of music education.
Aldershot: Ashgate.
Arnot, M. 2007. Gender Voices in the Classroom. In C. Skelton, B. Francis
and L. Smulyan (eds.) The Sage Handbook of Gender and Education. Thousand Oaks,
CA: Sage, 407-421.
Ashley, Martin. 2009. How high should boys sing?: Gender, authenticity and credibility
in the young male voice. Surrey: Ashgate.
153
Atkinson, P. & Coffey, A. 2002. Revisiting the relationship between participant
observation and interviewing. In J. F. Gubrium and J. A. Holstein (eds.) Handbook of
Interview Research. Thousand Oaks CA: Sage, 801-881.
Atkinson, P. & Hammersley, M. 1994. Ethnography and participant observation.
In N. Denzin and Y. Lincoln (eds.) Handbook of qualitative research.
Thousand Oaks: Sage, 248-261.
Atkinson, P. 2001b. In P. Atkinson, S.A. Coffey, J.S. Delamont, J. Lofland and
L. Lofland (eds.) Handbook of Ethnography. London: Sage Publications, 1-8.
Bailey, S. M. (ed.) 2002. The Joessey-Bass reader on gender in education.
San Francisco, CA: Jossey-Bass.
Barnes, B. 2000. Understanding agency. Social theory and responsible action.
London: Sage Publications.
Baron-Cohen, S. 2004. The Essential Difference. London: Penguin.
Barrett, M. 2005. Musical communication and children’s communities of musical
practice. In R.D. Miell, R. MacDonald and D.J. Hargreaves (eds.) Musical
Communication. New York: Oxford University Press, 261-280.
Barry, N.H. 1992. The Effects of practice strategies, individual differences in cognitive
style and gender upon technical accuracy and musicality of student instrumental
performance. Psychology of Music 20 (2), 112-123.
deBeauvoir, S. 1972. The Second Sex. Harmondsworth: Penguin.
Bennetts, K. 2013. Boys’ music? School context and middle-school boys’ musical
choices. Music Education Research. 15 (2), 214-230.
Berg, P. 2010. Ryhmärajoja ja hierarkioita: etnografinen tutkimus peruskoulun yläasteen
liikunnanopetuksesta. [Group boundaries and hierarchies: An ethnographic study on
middle-school physical education] Dissertation. University of Helsinki, The Faculty of
Social Sciences. Helsinki: University Press.
Biesta, G. 1994. Education as Practical Intersubjectivity: Towards a Critical-Pragmatic
Understanding of Education. Educational Theory 44 (3), 299-317.
154
Biesta, G. & Burbules, N. 2003. Pragmatism and Educational Research.
Oxford: Rowman & Littlefield Publishers.
Björck, C. 2011. Claiming Space: Discourses on Gender, Popular Music,
and Social Change. Art Monitor Dissertation No 22. University of Gothenburg.
Blair, D.V. 2009. Learner agency: To understand and to be understood.
British Journal of Music Education 26 (2), 173-187.
Bohman, J. 1999. Practical Reason and Cultural Constraint. In R. Shusterman (ed.)
Bourdieu: A Critical reader. Oxford: Blackwell.
Bold, C. 2012. Using Narrative in Research. London: Sage.
Bond, K. E. 1994. How “Wild Things” tamed gender distinctions. Journal of Physical
Education, Recreation and Dance 65 (2), 28–33.
Borgström-Källén, C. 2014. När musik gör skillnad. Genus och genrepraktiker i samspel.
[When Music Makes a Difference. Gender and Genre Practise in Interplay] Dissertation.
University of Gothenburg.
Braun, V. and Clarke, V. 2006. Using thematic analysis in psychology.
Qualitative Research in Psychology 3 (2), 77-101.
Bredesen, O. 2004. Uudet pojat ja tytöt – uusi pedagogiikka? [Originally: Nye gutter
og jenter – en ny pedagogikk? New boys and girls – New pegagogy?] Translation into
Finnish Kristiina Antinjuntti. Oslo:. J. W. Cappelens vorlag.
Brendler, B. M. 2012. De-emphasizing gender in talk about texts: Literature response,
discussion, and gender within a classroom community of practice. University of
Minnesota, ProQuest, UMI Dissertations Publishing. 3513312. 311 p. Retrieved June
14th, 2014 from http://ezproxy.siba.fi/login?url=http://search.proquest.com/docview/1027
135715?accountid=150397.
Bresler, L. 1996. Ethical Issues in the Conduct and Communication of Ethnographic
Classroom Research. Studies in Art Education 37 (3), 133-44.
155
Bruner, J. 1996. The culture of education. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press.
Butler, J. 1990/1999. Gender Trouble. Feminism and the Subversion of Identity.
New York: Routledge.
Butler, J. 1991. Contingent Foundations: Feminism and the Question of
“Postmodernism”. Praxis International 11, 150-165.
Butler, J. 1993. Bodies that Matter. London: Routledge.
Butler, J. 2006. Hankala sukupuoli. Feminismi ja identiteetin kumous. [Originally:
Gender Trouble. Feminism and the Subversion of Identity] Translation into Finnish
Tuula Pulkkinen and Leena-Maija Rossi. Helsinki: Gaudeamus.
Butler, J. 2004. Undoing gender. New York and London: Routledge.
Charles, B. 2004. Boys’ and girls’ constructions of gender through musical composition
in the primary school. British Journal of Music Education 21 (3), 265-277.
Chodorow, N. 1978. Reproducing Mothering. Berkeley: University of California Press.
Chodorow, N. 1995. Family Structure and Feminine Personality. In N. Tuona and
R. Tong (eds.) Feminism and Philosophy. Boulder, Co: Westview Press., 199-216.
Cochran-Smith, M. & Lytle, S. 2009. Inquiry as Stance. Practitioner Research for
the Next Generation. New York: Teachers College Press.
Coeyman, B. 1996. Applications of feminist pedagogy to the college music major
curriculum: An introduction to the issues. College Music Symposium 36, 73-90.
Cohen, M. 1996. Is there a space for achieving girl? In P. F. Murphy and C. V. Gipps
(eds.) Equity in the classroom. London: Falmer Press., 124-135.
Coffey, A. & Atkinson, P. 1996. Making Sense of Qualitative Data. Complementary
Research Strategies. Thousand Oaks: Sage.
Coffey, A., Holbrook, B. & Atkinson, P. 1996. “Qualitative Data Analysis: Technologies
and Representations. Sociological Research Online 1 (1). Retrieved May 11th, 2013 from
<http://www.socresonline.org.uk/1/1/4.html>.
156
Coffield, F., Moseley, D., Hall, E. & Ecclestone, K. 2004. Should we be using learning
styles? What research has to say to practice. London: Learning and Skills Research
Centre.
Connell, R. 1995. Masculinities. Cambridge: Polity Press.
Connell, R. 2002. Gender. London: Polity Press.
Connell, R. 2009. Gender in World Perspective. Cambridge: Polity Press.
Connolly, P. 2004. Boys and Schooling in the Early Years. London: RoutledgeFalmer.
Cooper, N.A. 1995. Children’s singing accuracy as a function of grade level, gender,
and individual versus unison singing. Journal of Research in Music Education 43 (3),
222-231.
Csikszentmihalyi, M. 1990. Flow: The psychology of Optimal Experience.
New York: Harper and Row.
Davies, B. 1989. Frogs and Snails and Feminist Tales. Sydney: Allen and Unwin.
Davies, B. 1993. Shards of glass: Children reading and writing beyond gendered
identities. New Jersey: Hampton Press.
Davies, L. 1984. Pupil Power, Deviance and Gender in School. Lewes: Falmer.
Deegan, M. 2001. The Chicago School of Ethnography. In P. Atkinson, A. Coffey,
S.J. Delamont, J. Lofland and L. Lofland (eds.) Handbook of Ethnography.
London: Sage, 11-25.
DeLair, H. A. 2000. Power and gender: Issues in community. A practitioner ethnography
of the unit block area in a two-year primary early childhood classroom. The University
of New Mexico. ProQuest, UMI Dissertations Publishing. 9977762. 184 p. Retrieved
February 20th, 2012 from http://ezproxy.siba.fi/login?url=http://search.proquest.com/doc
view/304614787?accountid=150397
Delamont, S. & Atkinson, P. 1995. Fighting Familiarity. Essays on Education and
Ethnography. Creskill: Hampton Press.
157
Delzell, J. K. & Leppla, D. A. 1992. Gender association of musical instruments and
preferences of fourth-grade students for selected instrument. Journal of Research in
Music Education 40 (2), 93-103.
DeNora, T. 2000. Music in everyday life. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Dewey, J. 1966a. “The Dewey School.”. In F. W. Garforth (ed.) Dewey’s Educational
Writings. London: Heinemann, 181-196.
Dewey, J. MW = “The Middle Works: (1899-1924)”. In J. A. Boydston (ed.) The
Collective Works of John Dewey 1882-1953. Carbondale: Southern Illinois University
Press.
Dewey, J. 1997/1910. How we think. Toronto: Dover Publications.
Dewey, J. 1999/1929. Pyrkimys varmuuteen. Tutkimus tiedon ja toiminnan suhteesta.
Traslation in Finnish Pentti Määttänen. [A Quest for Certainty] Helsinki: Gaudeamus.
Dibben, N. 1999. Representations of Femininity in Popular Music.
Popular Music 18, 331-355.
Dibben, N. 2000. The Sound of “Synthetic Fury”: Dance music, machines and
masculinity. Popular Culture Review 11 (1), 75-84.
Dibben, N. 2009/2002. Gender Identity and Music. In R. MacDonald, D. Hargreaves
and D. Miell (eds.) Musical identities. New York: Oxford University Press, 117-133.
Engeström, R. 2009. Who Is Acting in an Activity System? In A. Sannino,
H. Daniels and K. D. Gutierrez. (eds.) Learning and Expanding with Activity Theory.
New York: Cambridge University Press, 257-273.
Engeström, Y. 1999. Activity theory and individual and social transformation.
In Y. Engeström, R. Miettinen and R-L. Punamäki (eds.) Perspectives on Activity
Theory. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 19-38.
Erickson, F. 1985. Qualitative Methods in Research on Teaching. In M. Wittrock (ed.)
Handbook of Research on Teaching (3rd ed.). New York: McMillan, 119-161.
158
Ericsson, C. & Lindgren, M. 2010. Musikklassrummet i blickfånget: Vardagskultur,
identitet, styrning och kunskapsbildning. [The music classroom in focus: Everyday
culture, identity, governance and knowledge formation] Research report 2010:1.
Halmstad: Halmstad University, School of Teacher Education [downloadable from
www.hh.se].
Evans, T. 1987. A Gender Agenda: a sociological study of teachers, parents and pupils
in their primary schools. Sydney: Allen and Unwin.
Fausto-Sterling, A. 1993. The Five Sexes: Why male and female are not enough.
The Sciences 33 (2), 20-24.
Fausto-Sterling, A. 2000a. The Five Sexes. Revisited. The Sciences 40 (4), 18-23.
Fausto-Sterling, A. 2000b. Sexing the Body. New York: Basic Books.
Ferm, C. 2004. Öppenhet och medvetenhet. En fenomenologisk studie av musikdidaktisk
interaction. [Openness and awareness – a phenomenological study of music teaching and
learning interaction] Dissertation. Lulea: School of Music in Pitea. Lulea University of
Technology.
Ferm, C. 2006. Openness and awareness –- roles and demands of music teachers.
Music Education Research 8 (2), 237-250.
FNCC. 2004. Finnish National Core Curriculum for Basic Education 2004. Helsinki:
Finnish National Board of Education. Retrieved September 15th, 2010 from http://www.
oph.fi/english/curricula_and_qualifications/basic_education
FNBE. 1998. Finnish National Board of Education. Act and Degree on Basic Education
in the Arts. Retrieved September 15th, 2010 from http://www.oph.fi/english/curricula_
and_qualifications/basic_education
FNBE. 2002. Finnish National Board of Education. Framework Curriculum. Extended
syllabi. Retrieved September 15th, 2010 from http://www.oph.fi/english/curricula_and_
qualifications/basic_education
FNBE. 2005. Finnish National Board of Education. Framework Curriculum. General
syllabi. Retrieved September 15th, 2010 from http://www.oph.fi/english/curricula_and_
qualifications/basic_education
159
Fisher, J. 1994. Unequal races: gender and assessment. In D. Graddoll, J. Maybin and
B. Stierer (eds.) Researching language and literacy in social context.
Clevedon: Multilingual Matters, 168-176.
Fortney, P. M., Boyle, D.J. & DeCarbo, N.J. 1993. A study of middle school band
students’ instrument choices. Journal of Research in Music Education 41 (1), 28-39.
Foster, V. 1996. Space invaders: desire and threat in the schooling of girls.
Discourse: Studies in cultural policies of education 17 (1), 43-46.
Foucault, M. 1978. The Will to Knowledge: The History of Sexuality, Vol. 1.
Harmondsworth: Penguin.
Francis, B. 1998. Power Plays: primary school children’s conception of gender,
power and adult work. Stoke-on-Trent: Trentham Books.
Francis, B. 2000. Boys, girls and achievement: addressing the classroom issues.
London: RoutledgeFalmer.
Francis, B. & Skelton, C. 2005. Reassessing gender and achievement. Questioning
contemporary key debates. London and New York: Routledge.
Freire, P. 1970. Pedagogy of the oppressed. New York: Herder and Herder.
Gee, J. 1990. Social linguistics and literacies: Ideologies in discourses.
New York: Falmer Press.
Gibbs, G. 2007. Analyzing Qualitative Data. London: Sage.
Goffman, E. 1961. Asylums: Essays on the social situation of mental patients and
another inmates. New York: Anchor.
Goldman, R. 2007. Video Representations and the Perspectivity Framework:
Epistemology, Ethnography, Evaluation, and Ethics. In R. Goldman, B. Pea, B. Barron
and S. Derry (eds.) Video Research in the Learning Sciences.
New York: Laurence Erlbaum Assoc., 3-37.
Gordon, T., Holland, J. & Lahelma, E. 2000a. Making Spaces. Citizenship and
Difference in Schools. Basingstoke: Macmillan Press.
160
Gordon, T., Holland, J. & Lahelma, E. 2000b. Moving bodies/Still bodies: Embodiment
and agency in schools. In L. McKie and N. Watson (eds.) Organizing bodies: Policy,
Institutions and Work. Explorations in Sociology 58, The British Sociological
Association. London: Macmillan; & New York: St. Martin’s Press, 81-101.
Gordon, T. & Lahelma, E. 2002. Koulun arkea tutkimassa. Yläasteen erot ja erilaisuudet.
[Examining day-to-day life in school. The difference and diversity in middle-school].
City of Helsinki, Education Department A1:2002. Helsinki: City of Helsinki.
Gordon, T. 2006a. Girls in education: citizenship, agency and emotions. Gender and
Education 18 (1), 1-15.
Gordon, T. 2006b. Gender and Citizenship. In C. Skelton, B. Francis and L. Smulyan
(eds.) The Sage Handbook of Gender and Education. Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage,
279-292.
Gordon, T. & Lahelma, E. 2003. Opetus ja oppiminen virallisessa koulussa. [Teaching
and Learning in Formal School.] In T. Gordon & E. Lahelma (eds.) Koulun arkea
tutkimassa: yläasteen erot ja erilaisuudet. [Examining day-to-day life in School.
The difference and diversity in middle-school] City of Helsinki, Education Department
A1:2002. Helsinki: University Print, 74-77.
Gould, E. 1992. Gender-specific occupational role models: Implications for music
educators. Update: Applications of Research in Music Education 11 (1), 8-12.
Gould, E. 1994. Getting the whole picture: The view from here. Philosophy of Music
Education Review 2 (2), 92-98.
Gould, E. 2004. Feminist theory in music education research: Grrl-illa games as
nomadic practice (or how music education fell from grace). Music Education Research
6 (1), 67-80.
Gould, E. 2007. Social justice in music education: the problematic of democracy.
Music Education Research 9 (2), 169-189.
Green, L. 1997. Music, Gender and Education. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Green, L. 2002. Exposing the gendered discourse of music education. Feminism &
Psychology 12 (2), 137-144.
161
Gutierrez, K. 1993. How talk, context, and script shape contexts for learning: A cross
case comparison of journal sharing. Linguistics and Education 5 (3/4), 335-365.
Gutierrez, K. & Rymes, B. & Larson, J. 1995. Script, Counterscript, and Underlife in
the Classroom: James Brown versus Brown v. Board of Education. Harvard Educational
Review 65 (3), 445-471.
Hammersley, M. & Atkinson, P. 2007. Ethnography: Principles in Practice (3rd ed.)
Wiltshire: Routledge.
Happel, A. 2011. Practicing gender: A feminist ethnography of an all girls’ after-school
club. Georgia State University, ProQuest, UMI Dissertations. 3501096 188 p. Retrieved
June 14th, 2014 from http://ezproxy.siba.fi/login?url=http://search.proquest.com/docview/
926827345?accountid=150397
Hargreaves, D. J., Comber, C. & Colley, A. 1995. Effects of age, gender, and training on
musical preferences of British secondary school students. Journal of Research in Music
Education 42 ( 3), 242-250.
Harris, A. 1990. Race and Essentialism in Feminist Legal Theory. Stanford Law Review
42 (3), 581-616. doi:10.2307/1228886
Haslanger, S. 1995. Ontology and Social Construction. Philosophical Topics 23, 95-125.
Heimonen, M. 2002. Music Education and Law. Regulation as an Instrument.
Studia Musica 17. Sibelius Academy. Helsinki: PB-Printing Oy.
Ho, W.-C. 2009. Gender differences in instrumental learning among secondary school
students in Hong Kong. Gender and Education 21 (4), 405-422.
Hopearuoho-Saajala, K. & Keskinen, S. 1998. Tyttöjen ja poikien ystävyyssuhteet
sosiaalisen sukupuolen rakentajina. [Girls’ and boys’ friendships constructing the social
gender] In S. Keskinen and K. Lehtonen (eds.) Tytöt ja pojat: Samanlaisia ja erilaisia.
[Girls and boys: Similar and different] University of Turku, Faculty of Education
Research Series A:187. Turku: Painosalama, 58–70.
Hall, C. 2005. Gender and boys’ singing in early childhood. British Journal of Music
Education 22, 5-20.
162
hooks, b. 1989. Talking back: Thinking feminist, thinking black. Boston: South End
Press.
hooks, b. 2000. Feminist Theory: From Margin to Center (2nd ed.) London: Pluto Press.
Ilomäki, L. 2011. Search of Musicianship: A Practitioner-Research Project on Pianists’
Aural- Skills Education. Studia Musica 45. Helsinki: Sibelius Academy.
Ilomäki, L. & Holkkola, M. 2013. Musiikin perusteet ja muuttuva oppimiskäsitys [Basics
of Music and the changing concept of learning]. In M-L. Juntunen, H.M. Nikkanen and
H. Westerlund (eds.) Musiikkikasvattaja. Kohti refleksiivistä käytäntöä. [Music educator.
Towards a reflexive practice] Jyväskylä: PS-kustannus, 204-221.
Ivinson, G. & Murphy, P. 2007. Rethinking Single-sex Teaching. Open University Press.
Jackson, C. 2002. “Laddishness” as a self-worth protection strategy. Gender and
Education 14 (1), 37-51.
Joffe, H. 2011. Thematic Analysis. In D. Harper & A. Thomson (eds.) Qualitative
Research Methods in Mental Health and Psychotherapy: A Guide for Students and
Practitioners. London: Wiley-Blackwell, 209-224.
Jones, S. & Myhill, D. 2004. Seeing things differently: teachers’ constructions of
underachievement. Gender and Education 16 (4), 531-546.
Jorgensen, E. R. 2008. Questions for music education research. Music Education
Research 10 ( 3), 331-346.
Josselson, R. & Lieblich, A. 2003. A framework for narrative research proposals in
psychology. In R. Josselson, A. R., Lieblich, A. and D. P. McAdams (eds.) Up close and
personal: The teaching and learning of narrative research. Washington, DC: APA Books,
259-274.
Juntunen, M.-L., Karlsen, S., Kuoppamäki, A., Laes, T. & Muhonen, S. 2014.
Envisioning imaginary spaces for musicking: Equipping students for leaping into
the unexplored. Music Education Research 16 (3). London: Routledge, 251-266.
163
Juntunen, M.-L. 2011. Music. In S. Laitinen, A. Himola and M-L. Juntunen (eds.)
Assessment of the Learning Outcomes in Music, Visual Arts and Crafts in the Final 9th
Grade of Basic Education, Education Follow-up Reports 2011:11. Helsinki: The National
Board of Education, 36-95.
Kankkunen, T. 2004. Tytöt, pojat ja “erojen leikki”. Sukupuolen rakentaminen koulun
kuvataideopetuksen arjessa. [Girls, boys and ‘gender play’. Gender construction in the
everyday context of school art education] University of Art and Design of Helsinki
Publication A 52. Helsinki: University of Art and Design.
Karlsen, S. 2011. Using musical agency as a lens: Researching music education from the
angle of experience. Research Studies in Music Education 33 (2), 107-121.
Knoblauch, H. 2006/2009. Videography. Focused Ethnography and Video Analysis.
In H. Knoblauch, B. Schnettler, J. Raab and H-G. Soeffner (eds.) Video-Analysis:
Methodology and Methods. Frankfurt am Main: Peter Lang. 69-84.
Koppinen, M. 2001. Tampereen konservatorio 1931-2001. [The Conservatory of Tampere
1931-2001] Jyväskylä: Gummerus.
Koramo, M. 2009. Taiteen perusopetus 2008. Selvitys taiteen perusopetuksen
järjestämisestä lukuvuonna 2007-2008. [Basic art education. 2008. An account
of organizing of basic art education in 2007-2008] Finish National Board of
Education. Retrieved July 13th, 2012 from http://www.oph.fi/julkaisut/2008/taiteen_
perusopetus_2008
Korpela, P., Kuoppamäki, A., Laes, T., Miettinen, L., Muhonen, S., Muukkonen, M.,
Nikkanen, H., Ojala, A., Partti, H., Pihkanen, T. & Rikandi, I. 2010. Music Education in
Finland. In I. Rikandi (ed.) Mapping the Common Ground. Philosophical perspectives
on Finnish music education. Helsinki: BTJ Kustannus, 16-30.
Koza, J. E. 1992. Picture this: Sex equity in textbook illustrations. Music Educators
Journal 78 (7), 28-33.
Koza, J. E. 1993. Big boys don’t cry (or sing): Gender, misogyny, and homophobia in
college choral methods texts. Quarterly Journal of Music Teaching and Learning 4 (4/5),
48-64.
164
Koza, J. E. 1994. Females in 1988 middle school music textbooks: An analysis of
illustrations. Journal of Research in Music Education 42 (2), 145-171.
Kuoppamäki, A. 2007. Vastaako metsä niin kuin sinne huudetaan? Yhteisöllisyys ja
tunteet musiikin oppimisen voimavarana. [A sense of community and emotions as a
learning resource in music] The Finnish Journal of Music Education 10 (1-2), 114-117.
Kuoppamäki, A. 2010. A tool and the art of using it –- Elementary music theory as a
means for enabling musical participation. The Finnish Journal of Music Education 13
(2), Helsinki: 17-22.
Kuoppamäki, A. 2010. Music Education in the Spaces of Gender. In I. Rikandi (ed.)
Mapping the Common Ground. Philosophical perspectives on Finnish music education.
Helsinki: BTJ Kustannus, 180-191.
Kuoppamäki, A. 2013. Säveltäminen yhteisöllisen vuorovaikutuksen ja toimijuuden
rakentajana. Tarinoita musiikin perusteiden tunneilta. [Constructing interaction and
group agency through composing. Narratives from Basics of Music Lessons] In J. Ojala
and L. Väkevä (eds.) Säveltäjäksi kasvattaminen. Pedagogisia näkökulmia musiikin
luovaan tekijyyteen. [Educating a Composer. Perspectives on Creative Authorship]
Tampere: Juvenes Print, 148-162.
Kvale, S. & Brinkmann, S. 2009. InterViews. Learning the Craft of Qualitative Research
Interviewing. Thousand Oaks: Sage.
Käyhkö, M. 2006. Siivoojaksi oppimassa: etnografinen tutkimus työläistytöistä puhdistus
palvelualan koulutuksessa. [Learning to become a cleaning person: an ethnographic
study on blue-collar girls participating in cleaning training] Joensuu: Joensuu University
Press.
Lahelma, E. & Gordon, T. (eds.) 2003. Koulun arkea tutkimassa. Yläasteen erot ja
erilaisuus. [Examining day-to-day life in school. The difference and diversity in middle
school] City of Helsinki, Education Department A1:2002. Helsinki: University Print.
Lahelma, E. & Gordon, T. 2007. Taustoja, lähtökohtia ja avauksia kouluetnografiaan.
[Backgrounds, starting points and openings on ethnography] In S. Lappalainen,
P. Hynninen, T. Kankkunen, E. Lahelma and T. Tolonen (eds.) Etnografia metodologiana:
Lähtökohtana koulutuksen tutkimus. [An ethnography as a methodology: Educational
research as a starting point] Tampere: Vastapaino, 17-38.
165
Lamb, R. 1996. Discords: Feminist pedagogy in music education. Theory into Practice
35 (2), 124-131.
Lamb, R. 1997. Music trouble: Desire, discourse, education. Canadian University Music
Review 18 (1), 85-98.
Lamb, R., Dolloff, L. A., & Howe, S. W. 2002. Feminism, feminist research, and gender
research in music education: A selective review. In R. Colwell and C. Richardson
(eds.) The New Handbook of Research on Music Teaching and Learning. Toronto:
Oxford University Press, 648-674.
Lamb, R. 2007. Gender issues in music education at the Pan-Canadian Symposium.
In K.Veblen and C. Beynon et al. From Sea to sea: Perspectives on music education in
Canada, 1-8. Retrieved January 12th, 2014 from http://ir.lib.uwo.ca/musiceducationEbooks/1/
Lappalainen, S. 2006. Kansalaisuus, etnisyys ja sukupuoli lasten välisissä suhteissa ja
esiopetuksen käytännöissä. [Nationality, ethnicity and gender in children’s peer relations
and preschool practices] Department of Education. Research Report 206. Helsinki:
University Press.
Lappalainen, S. 2007. Johdanto: mikä ihmeen etnografia? [Introduction: What
ethnography?] In S. Lappalainen, P. Hynninen, T. Kankkunen, E. Lahelma and
T. Tolonen (eds.) Etnografia metodologiana: Lähtökohtana koulutuksen tutkimus.
[An ethnography as a methodology: Educational research as a starting point]
Tampere: Vastapaino, 65-88.
Lave, J. & Wenger, E. 1991. Situated learning: Legitimate peripheral participation.
Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Leavy, P. 2009. Methods Meet Art. Arts-Based Research Practice.
New York: The Guildford Press.
Lees, S. 1986. Losing Out. London: Hutchinson.
Lehikoinen, K. 2006. Stepping Queerly? Discourses in Dance Education for Boys in
Late 20th -Century Finland. Oxford: Peter Lang.
166
Lembo, L. 2011. The effects of gender-based classroom placement on the academic
achievement of boys and girls at the elementary level. California State University,
Stanislaus, ProQuest, UMI Dissertations Publishing. 3458365. 117 p. Retrieved June
14th, 2014 from http://ezproxy.siba.fi/login?url=http://search.proquest.com/docview/87617
7092?accountid=150397
Lempiäinen, K. 2007. Sukupuolinen toimija. Kysymys olemuksesta, roolista ja tavasta.
[Gendered agent. The question of appearance, role and habit] Sosiologia 44 (2), 109-120.
Leppänen, T. 2010. Vallatonta musiikkia. [Childish music. Children’s music culture in
Finland] Helsinki: Gaudeamus.
Länsi-Helsingin musiikkiopisto. 1995. Länsi-Helsingin musiikkiopisto 50 vuotta.
[50 years of Music School of West Helsinki] Munkkiniemen Musiikkiyhdistys ry.
MacIntosh, P. S. 2000. Gender and fifth grade general music: A qualitative study
of teacher-student interaction. Doctoral dissertation. Ann Arbor: The University of
Michigan.
MacKinnon, C. 1989. Toward a Feminist Theory of State. Cambridge,
Massachusets: Harward University Press.
McWilliam, H. 2003. Gender equity issues in the depiction of female wind band
conductors and wind band experts in The Instrumentalist Magazine (August 2000 July 2002). Dissertation. Madison: University of Wisconsin.
Martino, W. & Berrill, D. 2003. Boys, schooling and masculinities: Interrogating the
‘right’ way to educate boys. Educational Review 55 (2), 99-117.
Martino, W. & Pallotta- Chiarolli, M. (eds.) 2003. So What’s a Boy?
Maidenhead: Open University/McGraw Hill.
Martino, W. 2006. The “Right” Way to Educate Boys: Interrogating the Politics of Boys’
Education in Australia. In C. Skelton, B. Francis and L. Smulyan (eds.)
The Sage Handbook of Gender and Education. Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage, 350-364.
Mattelart, A. & Mattelart, M. 1998. Theories of Communication. A Short Introduction.
London: Sage.
167
Maynard, T. 2002. Boys and Literacy: Exploring the Issues. London: Routledge.
Mead, G.H. 1934/1956/1934. The social psychology of Georg Herbert Mead.
Chicago IL: University of Chicago Press.
Mikkola, M. 2012. Feminist Perspectives on Sex and Gender. In E.N. Zalta (ed.)
The Stanford Encyclopedia of Philosophy (Fall 2012 Edition), Retrieved May 20th, 2014
from URL = <http://plato.stanford.edu/archives/fall2012/entries/feminism-gender/>.
Morton, C. 1994. Whistle, daughter, whistle, and you shall have a man: Sexism in
children’s song materials. In P. Bourne, P. Masters, N. Amin, M. Gonick and L.
Gribowski (eds.) Feminism and education: A Canadian perspective 2. Toronto,
ON: Centre for Women’s Studies in Education, 203-220.
Moss, G. 2007. Literacy and gender. London: Routledge.
McNay, L. 2004. Agency and experience: gender as lived relation. In L. Adkins and
B. Skeggs (eds.) Feminism After Bourdieu. Oxford: Blackwell Publishing.
North, A., Hargreaves, D. & O’Neill, S. 2000. The importance of music to adolescents.
British Journal of Educational Psychology 70 (2), 255-272.
Ojala, H., Palmu, T. & Saarinen, J. 2009. Paikalla pysyvää ja liikkeessä olevaa.
Feministisiä avauksia toimijuuteen ja sukupuoleen. [Still standing and moving. Feminist
openings on agency and gender.]. In H. Ojala, T. Palmu, & J. Saarinen (eds.) Sukupuoli ja
toimijuus koulutuksessa. [Gender and agency in education] Tampere: Vastapaino, 13-38.
Olsson, B. 2007. Social Issues in Music Education. In L. Bresler (ed.) International
Handbook of Research in Arts Education 16. Dordrecht: Springler, 989-1006.
O’Neill, S. A. 2012. Becoming a Music Learner: Toward a Theory of Transformative
Music Engagement. In G. McPherson and G. Welch (eds.) The Oxford Handbook of
Music Education 1. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 163–186.
O’Toole, P. 1994. I sing in a choir but I have ‘No voice!’. The Quarterly Journal of Music
Teaching and Learning 4-5 (4, 1), 65-77.
168
O’Toole, P. 1997. Escaping tradition: Tensions between the production of values and
pleasures in the choral setting. In R. Rideout (ed.) On the sociology of music education.
Norman, OK: University of Oklahoma, 130-137.
O’Toole, P. 1998. A missing chapter from choral methods books: How choirs neglect
girls. Choral Journal 39 (5), 9-32.
Paechter, C. 2003. Masculinities, femininities, and physical education: Bodily practices
as reified markers of community membership. In C. Vincent, C. (ed.) Social Justice,
Education and Identity. London: RoutledgeFalmer, 137-152.
Paechter, C. 2006. Constructing Femininity/Constructing Femininities. In C. Skelton,
B. Francis and L. Smulyan (eds.) The Sage Handbook of Gender and Education.
Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage, 365-377.
Paley, V.G. 1984. Boys and Girls. Chicago: University of Chicago Press.
Palmu, T. 2003. Sukupuolen rakentuminen koulun kulttuurisissa teksteissä: etnografia
yläasteen äidinkielen oppitunneilla. [The gender construction in school’s cultural texts:
An ethonography on middle-school Finnish language lessons] University of Helsinki:
Studies of Educational Sciencies 189.
Partti, H. 2012. Learning from cosmopolitan digital musicians. Identity, musicianship,
and changing values in (in)formal music communities. Dissertation. Studia Musica 50.
Helsinki: Sibelius Academy.
Partti, H., Westerlund, H. & Björk, C. 2013. Oppimiskäsitykset reflektiivisen
musiikkikasvattajan toiminan ohjaajina. [Learning conceptions directing the acting as a
reflexive music educator.] In M-L. Juntunen, H.M. Nikkanen and H. Westerlund, (eds.)
Musiikkikasvattaja. Kohti refleksiivistä käytäntöä. [Music educator. Towards a reflexive
practice]. Jyväskylä: PS-kustannus, 54-70.
Patton, M. 2003. Qualitative Evaluation Checklist. Retrieved October 2nd, 2014 from
http://www.wmich.edu/evalctr/archive_checklists/qec.pdf
Phoenix, A. 2008. Analysing narrative context. In M. Andrews, C. Squire and
M. Tamboukou (eds.) Doing Narrative Research. London: Sage, 72-87.
169
Reimer, B. 1995. The Experience of Profundity in Music. Journal of Aesthetic Education
29 (4), 1-21.
Renold, E. 2000. Coming out: Gender, (hetero)sexuality and the primary school.
Gender and Education 12 (3), 309-326.
Renold, E. 2001. “Square girls”, femininity and the negotiation of academic success in
the primary school. British Educational Research Journal 27, 577-588.
Renold, E. & Allan, A. 2006. Bright and beautiful: High achieving girls, ambivalent
femininities, and the feminization of success in the primary school. Discourse: studies in
the cultural politics of education 27 (4), 457-473.
Renold, E. 2005. Girls, Boys and Junior Sexualities. London: Routledge.
Renold, E. 2006a. They won’t let us play... unless you’re going out with one of them:
girls, boys and Butler’s “heterosexual matrix” in the primary years. British Journal of
Sociology of Education 27 (4), 489-509.
Renold, E. 2006b. Gendered Classroom Experiences. In C. Skelton, B. Francis & L.
Smulyan (eds.) The Sage Handbook of Gender and Education. Thousand Oaks, CA:
Sage, 439-451.
Reay, E. 2001. “Spice girls”, “nice girls”, “girlies” and “tomboys”: Gender discourses,
girls’ cultures and femininities in the primary classroom. Gender and education 13 (2),
153-166.
Rikandi, I. 2012. Negotiating musical and pedagogical agency in a learning community.
Dissertation. Studia Musica 49. Helsinki: Sibelius Academy.
Rogers, M.R. 2004. Teaching approaches in music theory. An overview of pedagogical
philosophies. Carbondale: Southern Illinois University Press.
Rogoff, B. 2003. The cultural nature of human development. New York: Oxford
University Press.
Roulston, K. & Misawa, M. 2011. Music teachers’ constructions of gender in elementary
education. Music Education Research 13 (1), 3-28.
170
Schirato, T. & Yell, S. 2000. Communication and cultural literacy.
St Leonards: Allen & Unvin.
Schmidt, C.P. 1995. Attributions of success, grade level, and gender as factors in choral
students’ perceptions of teacher feedback. Journal of Research in Music Education 43
(4), 313-329.
Seddon, F. 2012. A book review on: Armstrong, V. 2011. Technology and the Gendering
of Music Education. British Journal on Music Education 29 (3), 431-432.
Skeggs, B. 1994. Situating the Production of Feminist Ethnography. In M. Maynard
and J. Purvis (eds.) Researching Women’s Lives from a Feminist Perspective.
London: Taylor & Francis, 77-92.
Skelton, C. (ed.) 1989. Whatever Happens to Little Women?: Gender and Schooling.
Milton Keynes: Open University Press.
Skelton, C. 2001. Schooling the boys: masculinities and primary education.
Buckingham: Open University Press.
Skelton, C. & Francis, B. 2005. (eds.) A feminist Critique. Routledge: London.
Skelton, C. 2006. Boys and Girls in the Elementary School. In C. Skelton, B. Francis
and L. Smulyan (eds.) The Sage Handbook of Gender and Education. Thousand Oaks,
CA: Sage, 140-150.
Skelton, C. & Francis, B. 2009. Feminism and The Schooling Scandal.
New York: Routledge.
Slavin, R. 1994. Educational Psychology: Theory and Practice (4th ed.).
Boston: Allyn & Bacon.
Small, C. 1998. Musicking. The meanings of performing and listening. Middletown,
CT: Wesleyan University Press.
SMOL. 2013. Suomen musiikkioppilaitosten liitto ry. [Association of the Finnish Music
Schools.] Retrieved April 14th, 2014 from http://www.oaj.fi/cs/smol/etusivu
Spelman, E. 1988. Inessential Woman. Boston: Beacon Press.
171
Stone, A. 2007. An Introduction to Feminist Philosophy. Cambridge: Polity Press.
Sullivan, A. 2010. Single-sex and co-educational schooling: lifecourse consequences?
London: Centre for Longitudinal Studies, Institute of Education. Retrieved May 16th,
2014 from www.ioe.ac.uk/Research_Expertise/Research_brochure_2010_FINAL.pdf
Swain, J. 2002. The resources and strategies boys use to establish status in a junior
school without competitive sport. Discourse 23, 91-107.
Schwartz, L. J. 2009. Music theory pedagogy: An examination of ideological and
methodological assumptions that shape current praxis in undergraduate tonal music
theory instruction in the north american music academy, and the (possible) turn toward
a scholarship of teaching that is informed by critical inquiry, responsible ethics, and a
pedagogy of hope. University of Manitoba, ProQuest, UMI Dissertations Publishing.
NR71735. 236 p. Retrieved June 6th, 2014 from http://ezproxy.siba.fi/login?url=http://
search.proquest.com/docview/860140309?accountid=150397
Tainio, L. 2005. Luokkahuoneen vuorottelujärjestyksen rikkomukset. [Breaches of
the classroom script] In L. Kuure, E.L, Kärkkäinen and M. Saarenkunnas (eds.) Kieli
ja sosiaalinen toiminta. [Language and the social action] The year book of Finnish
association for applied linguistics 2005. Jyväskylä: University of Jyväskylä, 179-192.
Tainio, L. (ed.) 2007. Vuorovaikutusta luokkahuoneessa. Näkökulmana
keskusteluanalyysi. [Interaction in a classroom. Conversation analysis as a viewpoint]
Helsinki: Gaudeamus.
Tainio, L. 2008. Toisten puhujien matkiminen luokkahuoneessa. [Imitating the speech of
others in the classroom] In S. Routarinne and T. Uusi-Hallila (eds.) Nuoret kielikuvassa.
Kouluikäisten kieli 2000-luvulla. [Adolescents in the methaphors. The language of the
schoolchildren] Helsinki: Finnish Literature Exchange, 148-164.
Tainio, L. 2009. Puhuttelu luokkahuoneessa. Tytöt ja pojat huomion kohteena.
[Addressing the others in the classroom. Girls and boys in focus.]. In H. Ojala, T. Palmu
and J. Saarinen (eds.) Sukupuoli ja toimijuus koulutuksessa. [Gender and agency in
education] Tampere: Vastapaino, 13-38.
Takaya, K. 2008. Jerome Bruner’s Theory of Education: From Early Bruner to
Later Bruner. In Interchange 39 (1), 1-19.
172
Taylor, C. 1985. Human Agency and Language. Philosophical Papers, 1.
Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Thorne, B. 1993. Gender Play: Girls and Boys in School. New Brunswick:
Rutgers University Press.
Tochon, F. 2007. From video cases to video pedagogy: A framework for video feedback
and reflection in pedagogical research praxis. In R. Goldman, B. Pea, B. Barron and
S. Derry (eds.) Video Research in the Learning Sciences. New York: Laurence Erlbaum
Assoc., 53-65.
Tolonen, T. & Palmu, T. 2007. Etnografia, haastattelu ja (valta)positiot. [Ethnography,
interview and (power) positions] In S. Lappalainen, P. Hynninen, T. Kankkunen,
E. Lahelma and T. Tolonen (eds.) Etnografia metodologiana: Lähtökohtana koulutuksen
tutkimus. [An ethnography as a methodology: Educational research as a starting point]
Tampere: Vastapaino, 89-112.
Tolonen, T. 2001. Nuorten kulttuurit koulussa. Ääni, tila ja sukupuolen arkiset
järjestykset. [Adolescent’s cultures in school. Voice, space and gender in youth cultures
at school] Helsinki: Gaudeamus.
Väkevä, L. 2013. Informaali oppinen, musiikin opetus ja populaarimusiikin
pedagogiikka. [Informal learning, music education and popular music pedagogy.]
In M-L. Juntunen, H.M. Nikkanen and H. Westerlund, (eds.) Musiikkikasvattaja.
Kohti refleksiivistä käytäntöä. [Music educator. Towards a reflexive practice].
Jyväskylä: PS-kustannus, 93-104.
Vygotski, L.S. 1978. Mind in society: The development of higher psychological process.
In M. Cole, V. John-Steiner, S. Scribner and E. Souberman (eds.) Cambridge,
MA: Harvard University Press., 121-133.
Walkerdine, V. 1984. Developmental psychology and the child-centered pedagogy:
the insertion of Piaget into early education. In J. Henriques, W. Hollway, C. Urwin,
C. Venn and V. Walkerdine (eds.) Changing the subject: Psychology, social regulation
and subjectivity. London: Methuen, 153-202.
Walkerdine, V. 1989. Counting Girls Out. London: Virago.
Walkerdine, V. 1990. Schoolgirl Fictions. London: Verso.
173
Warrington, M. & Younger, M. 2001. Single-sex classes and equal opportunities for girls
and boys: Perspectives through time from a mixed comprehensive school in England.
Oxford Review of Education 27 (3), 339-356.
Watson-Gegeo, K. 1997. Classroom Ethnography. In N. Hornberger, and D. Corson (eds.)
Encyclopedia of Language and Education, Volume 8: Research Methods in Language
and Education. Dordrecht: Kluwer Academic Publishers Group, 135-144.
Weaver-Hightower, M. 2003. The “Boy Turn” in Research on Gender and Education.
Review of Educational Research 73 (4), 471-498.
Wenger, E. 1998/2003. Communities of practice. Cambridge: Cambridge University
Press.
Wenger, E., McDermott, R. & Snyder, W.M. 2002. Cultivating communities of practice.
Boston, MA: Harvard Business School Press.
Wenger, E. 2006. Learning for a small planet. A research agenda. Project Overview.
Scientific project description. Retriewed August 28th, 2014 from http://www.ewenger.
com/research/index.htm
Wenger, E. 2009. Social learning capability: four essays on innovation and learning in
social systems. EQUAL Final Report. Retrieved July 14th, 2014 from http://wengertrayner.com/wp-content/uploads/2011/12/09-04-17-Social-learning-capability-v2.1.pdf
Westerlund, H. 2002. Bringing experience, action, and culture in music education.
Dissertation. Studia Musica 16. Helsinki: Sibelius Academy.
Westerlund, H. 2008. Justifying Music Education: A View from Here-and-Now Value
Experience. Philosophy of Music Education Review 16, 79–95. Retrieved March 23rd,
2012 from doi:10.2979/PME.2008.16.1.79.
West, C. & Zimmerman, D. H. 1987. Doing gender. Gender and society 1 (2), 125-151.
Whitehead, A. N. 1929. The Aims of Education and Other Essays.
New York: The Free Press.
Wilson, E. 2013. School-based Research. A Guide for education students (2nd ed.)
London: Sage Publications.
174
Yamakawa, Y., Forman, E., & Ansell, E. 2009. Role of Positioning: The role of
positioning in constructing an identity in a third grade mathematics classroom. In
K. Kumpulainen, C. E. Hmelo-Silver and M. Cesar (eds.) Investigating Classroom
Interaction: Methodologies in Action. Rotterdam: Sense Publishers, 179-201.
Younger, M. & Warrington, M. et al. 2005. Raising Boys’ Achievement. University
of Cambridge Faculty of Education. Department for Education and Skills. Research
Report RR 636. Retrieved July 14th, 2014 from http://webarchive.nationalarchives.gov.
uk/20130401151715/http://www.education.gov.uk/publications/eOrderingDownload/
RR636.pdf
Younger, M. & Warrington, M. 2006. Would Harry and Hermione have done better in
single-sex classes? A review of single-sex teaching in coeducational secondary schools
in the United Kingdom. American Educational Research Journal 43 (4), 579-620.
Zervoudakes, J. & Tanur, J.M. 1994. Gender and musical instruments: Winds of change?
Journal of Research in Music Education 42 (1), 58-67.
175
Appendix 1: Consent form of participation in the inquiry
Suostumus lapseni osallistumisesta tutkimukseen
_____________________________________saa osallistua opetustuntien videointiin
oppilaan nimi
ja ryhmäkeskusteluihin musiikin perusteiden tunneilla syyslukukaudella 2009 sekä
erikseen sovittuihin yksilöhaastatteluihin.
Helsingissä,
/
2009
____________________________________
huoltajan allekirjoitus ja nimenselvennys
Videotallenteet tulevat vain omaan tutkimuskäyttööni, eivätkä lapset esiinny lopullisessa
tutkimustekstissä omilla nimillään.
176
Appendix 2: Example of a teacher diary
Diary 09.09.09 / 3rd lesson / Phase I
1. Zip-zap -contact game
-the group participates impatiently in the warm-ups
-great atmosphere!
2. Rhythmic circle
-rhythmic patterns given by the teacher
-the students invent their own patterns
-it takes a long time for the boys to get organized
-some of the boys just run around, lie on the floor etc.
-the students invent great rhythms!
3. The students own rhythmic patterns are turned into the body percussions
> the body percussions are taught to the others
- CO-OPERATION!!!
- everybody participates in actively
4. The dish-brush-comping
-sword fighting!
-some of the students can’t concentrate and we have to stop the playing
> the situation is discussed together...
5. Discussing the time signatures and reading rhythmic patterns together
6. Exercises from the textbook
NOTES:
- a lesson with contradictions: some nice moments, but also some quite demanding...
Body percussions: everybody participated in actively and taught their own bodypercussions to the others really eagerly! GREAT!
The collaborative rhythmic piece with the dish brushes: this did not work out. Some of
the boys were just running around... The girls and couple of the boys tried to participate
in as actively as they could. I am not happy about cutting down the group task.
177
Appendix 3: Example of a litteration
A Data Session 10.12.09 / Anna Kuoppamäki: “Girls’ and boys’ learning communities
and the construction of agency” (SibA)
BoM I a 09.11.11 / boys
00:18:05
A rhythmic reading exercise
Te
A
Te
B
Te
C
Te
D
Te
D
Te
E
Te
D
Te
D
Te
F
Te
F
Te
F
Te
F
Te
F
Te
178
Hey, that’s a dotted quarter note... it’s read like this... daa-a [Te goes to the black board]
Look, it’s a quarter and a half... daa-a. [The students practice the reading of the dotted quarter
note.] Daa-a da daa-aa.
What does this daa-da-stuff mean?
It’s like using the rhythmic syllables... daa-a da daa.. Hey, let’s look at... please, listen up...
[noise], let’s take page 27. Let’s take 27.
Can I play now?
Please, not quite yet... let’s first read this exercise. Hey, S3, please take it [the book] on your
lap, so you can follow us easier... hey, this way, okay? And starts: one-and, two-and... [Everybody reads the exercise together]. Hey, how long is the rest in the second last bar? S3? [ S3 is lifting his hand.]
Well, it’s like... when you get to the... then it’s like daa-a... and then you [C claps the rhythm]
Yeah, what’s the name of the rest?
One and two and...
It’s a half... only a half beat long, so it’s the eighth rest...
So, it’s like da?
Exactly! Eighth rest. Please, let’s start again. [Noise] Okay, one-and, two-and... [The exercise
is repeated together.] Good! Let’s clap now the same rhythm. [Everybody claps the rhythm
together.] Yes! Hey, to how many do you count in this second exercise?
The second... to how many...
Do you kind of count these two notes together? [S5 still wonders about the previous exercise.]
[Te goes to S5 and further discusses the matter.] Look, when this is daa-a da daa...
Which do you like more, girls or boys?
Oh... both are equally nice.
We are naughty... look, I’m touching this... [D plays ‘naughty’.]
Okay, well, to how many do you count in this next piece?
I want you to consider us stupid.
Excuse me?
I want you to consider us stupid.
Stupid? Why would you want that?
Because.
Hey come on... [laughing]... I was wondering to how many does one count in this next...
My parents consider me stupid.
What? Who do...
My parents do.
Your parents consider you stupid? No they don’t.
179
ISBN: 978-952-5959-88-8 (Print)
ISBN: 978-952-5959-89-5 (PDF)
(ISSN 0788-3757)
Juvenes Print
tamPere 2015
RESEARCH PROGRAMME
MUTRI DOCTORAL SCHOOL
180